Selected quad for the lemma: sense_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
sense_n scripture_n understand_v word_n 8,215 5 4.6940 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A60978 Platonism unveil'd, or, An essay concerning the notions and opinions of Plato and some antient and modern divines his followers, in relation to the Logos, or word in particular, and the doctrine of the trinity in general : in two parts.; Platonisme déviolé. English Souverain, Matthieu, d. ca. 1699. 1700 (1700) Wing S4776 180,661 144

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

whether_o it_o be_v by_o a_o angel_n or_o by_o a_o immediate_a virtue_n be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o all_o this_o be_v call_v the_o oeconomy_n or_o as_o irenaeus_n say_v they_o be_v mysterious_a and_o extraordinary_a dispensation_n of_o the_o divinity_n which_o environ_v his_o majesty_n to_o temper_v its_o great_a splendour_n and_o adapt_v it_o to_o our_o curiosity_n for_o to_o imagine_v that_o this_o be_v a_o second_o person_n of_o this_o divinity_n as_o invisible_z and_o as_o infinite_a as_o the_o first_o will_v make_v all_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n not_o only_o useless_a but_o also_o absurd_a for_o they_o all_o unanimous_o declare_v not_o only_o that_o the_o father_n never_o make_v himself_o visible_a but_o also_o that_o he_o can_v do_v so_o it_o be_v impossible_a say_v eusebius_n demonstr_n evang._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 20._o that_o the_o eye_n of_o mortal_n shall_v ever_o see_v the_o supreme_a god_n to_o wit_n him_z who_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n and_o who_o essence_n be_v unbegotten_a and_o immutable_a it_o be_v absurd_a and_o against_o all_o reason_n say_v the_o same_o author_n hist_o eccl._n lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o that_o the_o unbegotten_a and_o immutable_a nature_n of_o almighty_a god_n shall_v take_v the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v forge_v such_o like_a falsity_n god_n forbid_v say_v novatian_n de_fw-la trinit_fw-la cap._n 26._o that_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v a_o angel_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v subject_v to_o he_o who_o angel_n he_o be_v et_fw-fr ibid._n cap._n 31._o if_o the_o son_n say_v he_o be_v as_o incomprehensible_a as_o the_o father_n the_o objection_n of_o the_o heretic_n will_v have_v some_o ground_n that_o then_o there_o be_v two_o go_n it_o be_v a_o impiety_n say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n epist_n adv_fw-la paulum_fw-la samosat_n to_o fancy_n that_o that_o god_n who_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n can_v be_v call_v a_o angel_n last_o otherwise_o i_o must_v transcribe_v all_o the_o father_n justin_n martyr_n explain_v himself_o on_o this_o wise_a in_o his_o dialogue_n with_o tryphon_n no_o body_n say_v he_o unless_o he_o be_v out_o of_o his_o wit_n will_v dare_v to_o advance_v that_o the_o father_n and_o author_n of_o all_o thing_n do_v quit_v the_o heaven_n to_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v see_v in_o a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o think_v to_o have_v finish_v but_o that_o i_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n pass_v by_o that_o excellent_a passage_n of_o tertullian_n against_o praxeas_n cap._n 16._o that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o the_o sovereign_a god_n descend_v into_o the_o womb_n of_o a_o woman_n though_o even_o the_o scripture_n itself_o shall_v say_v it_o this_o father_n be_v persuade_v by_o reason_n and_o philosophy_n that_o the_o supreme_a god_n be_v immense_a immutable_a and_o invisible_a demand_v how_o it_o can_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o almighty_a god_n who_o throne_n be_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n his_o footstool_n that_o this_o most_o high_a god_n shall_v walk_v in_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n shall_v converse_v with_o abraham_n shall_v call_v to_o moses_n out_o of_o a_o bush_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o be_v yet_o worse_o that_o he_o shall_v descend_v according_a to_o praxea_n into_o the_o womb_n of_o mary_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v impeach_v before_o pilate_n and_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o joseph_n he_o go_v on_o real_o one_o will_v not_o believe_v this_o concern_v the_o son_n if_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o speak_v it_o and_o perhaps_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o of_o the_o father_n though_o even_o the_o scripture_n shall_v say_v it_o how_o so_o will_v he_o mistrust_v the_o scripture_n no_o he_o mean_v only_o that_o he_o shall_v mistrust_v the_o literal_a sense_n and_o search_v there_o for_o a_o allegory_n consequent_o then_o all_o these_o father_n own_o that_o the_o word_n by_o which_o the_o father_n make_v himself_o visible_a be_v not_o of_o a_o nature_n incapable_a of_o cause_v itself_o to_o be_v see_v but_o something_o sensible_a which_o represent_v god_n to_o we_o it_o matter_n not_o whether_o they_o conceive_v by_o it_o a_o hypostasis_fw-la a_o spirit_n a_o intelligent_a be_v or_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o representation_n in_o a_o bright_a cloud_n animate_v with_o a_o voice_n this_o will_v always_o remain_v true_a that_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o word_n to_o be_v a_o spirit_n equal_a to_o the_o father_n as_o invisible_z by_o its_o nature_n as_o the_o father_n but_o only_o a_o certain_a emanation_n where_o god_n produce_v himself_o outward_o and_o discover_v himself_o in_o a_o sensible_a manner_n and_o though_o they_o may_v have_v sometime_o speak_v of_o the_o word_n as_o of_o something_o invisible_a they_o mean_v not_o by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v invisible_a by_o its_o nature_n but_o only_o that_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a to_o man_n out_o of_o the_o time_n of_o its_o oeconomy_n retire_v itself_o from_o their_o presence_n and_o become_v as_o it_o be_v hide_v in_o god_n sometime_o they_o will_v denote_v by_o it_o even_o the_o energy_n and_o the_o power_n of_o god_n wherewith_o his_o manifestation_n be_v always_o accompany_v but_o never_o a_o second_o hypostasis_fw-la in_o the_o divine_a nature_n for_o we_o must_v observe_v here_o sincere_o once_o for_o all_o that_o the_o word_n if_o you_o consider_v it_o only_o in_o its_o energy_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o god_n himself_o but_o when_o it_o be_v consider_v as_o it_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o divine_a presence_n than_o it_o be_v something_o sensible_a a_o voice_n a_o light_n or_o some_o external_a form_n such_o like_a as_o be_v see_v in_o angel_n or_o in_o the_o man_n j._n c._n our_o lord_n chap._n ii_o the_o ancient_n believe_v that_o the_o word_n be_v corporeal_a wherefore_o the_o ancient_n attribute_v a_o body_n to_o the_o word_n as_o servetus_n very_o well_o observe_v apolog._n ad_fw-la philip_n melanct._n and_o so_o tertullian_n speak_v in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n against_o praxeas_n chap._n 7._o where_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a that_o when_o god_n utter_v his_o word_n he_o give_v it_o a_o body_n indeed_o not_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n but_o a_o hypostasis_fw-la that_o be_v solidity_n and_o substance_n which_o be_v the_o true_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v probable_o what_o he_o mean_v when_o in_o chap._n 6._o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n he_o assure_v that_o jesus_n christ_n appear_v to_o abraham_n with_o flesh_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o bear_v non_fw-la nata_fw-la adhuc_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o indeed_o with_o such_o flesh_n as_o we_o but_o with_o a_o solid_a body_n which_o have_v more_o than_o appearance_n a_o body_n i_o say_v which_o he_o in_o the_o 8_o chapter_n call_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n from_o which_o as_o from_o a_o heavenly_a seed_n the_o messiah_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v and_o this_o seed_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o word_n which_o insinuate_v itself_o into_o it_o thence_o the_o ancient_a docetes_n and_o all_o the_o other_o heretic_n who_o hold_v the_o pre-existence_n of_o the_o word_n suppose_v that_o the_o word_n do_v not_o take_v true_a flesh_n of_o mary_n but_o that_o he_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o celestial_a and_o etherial_a body_n which_o he_o former_o bear_v in_o the_o apparition_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o have_v no_o more_o than_o the_o appearance_n and_o figure_n of_o a_o man_n which_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o face_n of_o god_n mons_fw-la le_fw-fr moyne_n do_v not_o understand_v the_o thing_n otherwise_o in_o his_o varia_n sacra_fw-la p._n 415._o the_o docetes_n say_v he_o compare_v the_o apparition_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o apparition_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o have_v be_v in_o etherial_a body_n for_o certain_a time_n vanish_v into_o the_o air_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o dispensation_n be_v finish_v imagine_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o of_o any_o other_o nature_n and_o it_o be_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o cerinthus_n and_o ebion_n suppose_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o take_v true_a flesh_n as_o st._n jerom_n assure_v in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o commentary_n on_o st._n matthew_n as_o cerinthus_n hold_v iren_n l._n 1._o c._n 25._o epiph._n haeres_fw-la 28._o that_o the_o world_n have_v be_v create_v by_o a_o power_n he_o also_o maintain_v that_o jesus_n who_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o joseph_n and_o mary_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o creator_n as_o to_o the_o christ_n or_o the_o word_n he_o make_v he_o the_o son_n of_o another_o power_n superior_a to_o the_o creator_n and_o attribute_v to_o he_o a_o celestial_a body_n which_o he_o have_v always_o keep_v without_o
to_o the_o learned_a and_o the_o philosopher_n with_o who_o they_o converse_v it_o be_v this_o mischievous_a policy_n that_o have_v bring_v so_o much_o confusion_n into_o the_o christian_a religion_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o appeal_n to_o pretend_a antiquity_n the_o testimony_n whereof_o be_v become_v altogether_o useless_a and_o liable_a to_o great_a illusion_n one_o may_v think_v of_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o ancient_n as_o to_o very_o good_a witness_n but_o instead_o of_o that_o we_o meet_v with_o oracle_n ambiguous_a and_o unintelligible_a a_o person_n of_o good_a abilitys_n in_o the_o last_o age_n complain_v of_o this_o as_o well_o as_o i._o michael_n le_fw-fr vassor_n traite_n de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr examen_fw-la ch_n 1._o p._n 10._o since_o philosophy_n say_v he_o be_v bring_v into_o christianity_n the_o latter_a have_v so_o visible_o degenerate_v from_o its_o primitive_a simplicity_n that_o the_o pagan_n themselves_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o it_o the_o man_n of_o thought_n believe_v it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a service_n do_v to_o religion_n to_o render_v it_o agreeable_a to_o the_o taste_n of_o the_o philosopher_n they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o reconcile_v our_o mystery_n with_o plato_n principle_n which_o be_v extreme_o in_o fashion_n when_o the_o gospel_n first_o go_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n origen_n and_o st._n austin_n afterward_o have_v so_o embarassed_a theology_n the_o former_a in_o the_o east_n and_o the_o latter_a in_o the_o western_a church_n where_o both_o have_v their_o admirer_n and_o disciple_n by_o endeavour_v to_o adjust_a christianity_n to_o that_o philosophy_n that_o it_o will_v cost_v one_o a_o world_n of_o pain_n to_o distinguish_v that_o which_o they_o and_o their_o follower_n have_v say_v with_o any_o exactness_n of_o thought_n upon_o divers_a important_a point_n of_o religion_n they_o give_v we_o none_o but_o allegorical_a sense_n to_o divers_a passage_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n their_o exposition_n appear_v so_o wide_a from_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o sacred_a author_n that_o one_o know_v not_o how_o to_o understand_v it_o so_o as_o to_o discern_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o particular_a speculation_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o those_o father_n to_o who_o we_o be_v refer_v as_o to_o faithful_a witness_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o time_n they_o live_v in_o but_o the_o father_n be_v not_o content_a to_o accommodate_v their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o platonic_a word_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o inquire_v further_o after_o another_o pre-existence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o they_o find_v it_o in_o the_o angel_n that_o speak_v to_o moses_n and_o the_o other_o patriarch_n tertullian_n in_o his_o dispute_n against_o martion_n lib._n 3._o speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o gospel_n say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o that_o allegorical_a state_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n etc._n etc._n these_o few_o word_n seem_v to_o discover_v the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o ancient_n for_o they_o signify_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o represent_v in_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n but_o as_o origen_n speak_v that_o he_o be_v substantial_o present_a in_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n tract_n 26._o in_o mat._n meaning_n thereby_o that_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v if_o one_o may_v so_o speak_v substantial_a and_o personal_a type_n of_o christ_n to_o come_v or_o rather_o that_o christ_n be_v then_o present_a in_o the_o person_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n who_o be_v his_o type_n on_o the_o like_a ground_n may_v we_o not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v allegorical_o present_a in_o all_o the_o angel_n who_o speak_v from_o god_n to_o man_n and_o that_o he_o be_v also_o allegorical_o present_a in_o that_o word_n of_o god_n which_o create_v the_o world_n that_o powerful_a word_n which_o say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n be_v a_o type_n of_o this_o powerful_a word_n which_o say_v by_o jesus_n christ_n let_v the_o light_a shine_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o men._n this_o allegorical_a pre-existence_n of_o christ_n be_v very_o agreeable_a with_o the_o scripture_n which_o say_v that_o of_o he_o which_o can_v belong_v to_o any_o thing_n but_o these_o type_n as_o the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n prophesy_v tempt_v of_o christ_n and_o other_o expression_n of_o that_o kind_n which_o represent_v to_o we_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o allegorical_a state_n those_o particular_a commission_n of_o angel_n and_o prophet_n be_v in_o some_o sort_n the_o preludia_fw-la of_o this_o universal_a and_o extraordinary_a commission_n of_o jesus_n christ_n with_o regard_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o ought_v not_o to_o pass_v over_o the_o remark_n of_o father_n simon_n upon_o this_o occonomy_n of_o the_o ancient_n hist_n crit._n du_fw-fr n._n t._n tom._n 1._o chap._n 2._o the_o mingle_n say_v he_o of_o the_o platonic_a philosophy_n with_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v not_o intend_v to_o ruin_v the_o orthodox_n faith_n but_o the_o more_o easy_o to_o persuade_v the_o greek_n to_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n the_o father_n be_v in_o this_o for_o imitate_v the_o apostle_n especial_o st._n paul_n who_o sometime_o do_v stoop_v to_o the_o infirmitys_n of_o the_o weak_a become_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o man_n father_n simon_n observe_v further_a that_o clemens_n of_o alexandria_n do_v sometime_o carry_v this_o occonomy_n too_o far_o that_o he_o apply_v himself_o entire_o to_o allegory_n it_o be_v fashionable_a in_o his_o time_n among_o the_o christian_n especial_o with_o the_o gnostic_n who_o think_v thereby_o to_o raise_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o be_v no_o way_n behind_o they_o in_o point_n of_o invention_n and_o subtlety_n that_o this_o be_v the_o more_o excusable_a in_o he_o because_o he_o live_v in_o a_o great_a city_n where_o it_o be_v likely_a they_o affect_v those_o kind_n of_o subtlety_n and_o that_o he_o believe_v they_o of_o use_n to_o establish_v the_o christian_a religion_n it_o be_v a_o prudent_a part_n in_o a_o able_a master_n to_o adapt_v thing_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o they_o he_o be_v to_o instruct_v that_o his_o paedagogus_fw-la wherein_o he_o be_v to_o lay_v down_o nothing_o but_o plain_a instruction_n be_v draw_v up_o with_o this_o design_n and_o that_o in_o it_o he_o explain_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o sublime_a and_o allegorical_a sense_n he_o observe_v also_o chap._n 4._o that_o those_o who_o have_v not_o these_o sublime_a notion_n pass_v for_o plain_a weak_a christian_n who_o know_v not_o the_o design_n of_o religion_n that_o the_o gnostic_n imagine_v themselves_o outdo_v all_o other_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v better_a if_o the_o orthodox_n have_v not_o imitate_v they_o therein_o but_o have_v content_v themselves_o with_o the_o literal_a exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o go_v forward_o to_o say_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v mingle_v in_o their_o religion_n divers_a platonic_a notion_n whereof_o one_o find_v at_o this_o day_n not_o a_o few_o in_o their_o cabalistick_a write_n this_o make_v some_o impression_n on_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o of_o the_o first_o christian_n who_o read_v with_o pleasure_n book_n that_o treat_v of_o angel_n and_o their_o converse_n with_o men._n the_o same_o author_n make_v it_o appear_v that_o not_o only_o those_o who_o reject_v the_o allegorical_a way_n be_v account_v illiterate_a but_o even_o pass_v for_o heretic_n too_o ibid._n chap._n 31._o and_o that_o theodorus_n of_o mopsue_n who_o follow_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o bible_n according_a to_o the_o method_n of_o his_o master_n diodorus_n and_o avoid_v the_o spiritual_a and_o allegorical_a sense_n be_v reckon_v for_o a_o person_n who_o favour_v judaisme_n by_o his_o too_o literal_a exposition_n for_o my_o part_n i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o it_o be_v of_o that_o set_a of_o divine_n who_o imitate_v theodorus_n that_o pamphilus_n be_v speak_v when_o he_o complain_v apol._n pro_fw-la orig._n that_o they_o who_o charge_v origen_n with_o so_o many_o absurdity_n will_v not_o admit_v allegory_n to_o be_v use_v in_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o may_v be_v conjecture_v from_o these_o word_n that_o the_o great_a reason_n why_o the_o ebionite_n and_o nazarenes_n be_v account_v plain_a simple_a people_n and_o poor_a in_o the_o faith_n be_v this_o that_o they_o reject_v the_o allegorical_a theology_n of_o the_o platonize_a and_o gnostick_n christian_n the_o word_n ebionite_n which_o signify_v poor_a and_o the_o other_o word_n gnostick_n which_o signify_v know_v be_v direct_o oppose_v it_o be_v certain_a origen_n call_v the_o ebionite_n poor_a in_o spirit_n philoc._n c._n 1._o because_o they_o adhere_v too_o much_o to_o the_o poverty_n of_o the_o letter_n or_o literal_a sense_n and_o despise_v the_o rich_a and_o the_o sublime_a
hereof_o you_o need_v only_o read_v his_o book_n de_fw-fr temulentia_fw-la where_o he_o push_v on_o very_o far_o his_o allegory_n of_o a_o spiritual_a marriage_n between_o god_n and_o wisdom_n say_v that_o the_o latter_a be_v deliver_v of_o a_o only_a and_o well-beloved_a son_n that_o be_v the_o sensible_a world_n he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o same_o expression_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o life_n of_o moses_n where_o he_o call_v the_o world_n the_o most_o perfect_a son_n of_o god_n one_o of_o our_o author_n steph._n le_fw-fr moine_n in_o notis_n ad_fw-la hippolyti_fw-la sermonem_fw-la have_v sincere_o acknowledge_v this_o truth_n it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o philo_n the_o jew_n have_v often_o speak_v of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o he_o call_v the_o angel_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v more_o he_o call_v the_o world_n so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o philo_n borrow_a these_o way_n of_o expression_n from_o the_o platonist_n for_o dwell_v at_o alexandria_n where_o there_o be_v many_o of_o these_o philosopher_n he_o take_v from_o their_o opinion_n very_o many_o thing_n which_o he_o insert_v in_o his_o write_n as_o to_o josephus_n his_o study_n be_v whole_o different_a for_o not_o have_v have_v any_o commerce_n with_o the_o platonist_n you_o can_v discover_v in_o he_o that_o genius_n and_o inclination_n to_o allegory_n so_o much_o observe_v in_o philo_n so_o that_o we_o can_v trace_v any_o thing_n of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o he_o it_o be_v object_v that_o philo_n have_v give_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o the_o word_n of_o plato_n which_o he_o have_v not_o do_v if_o he_o have_v understand_v the_o world_n by_o it_o it_o be_v remarkable_a say_v cudworth_n in_o his_o intellect_n sy_v p._n 549._o that_o philo_n although_o a_o great_a enemy_n to_o polytheism_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o call_v the_o divine_a word_n according_a to_o the_o platonist_n a_o second_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o think_v to_o thwart_v his_o religion_n and_o the_o first_o commandment_n of_o god_n but_o this_o author_n excuse_v philo_n but_o ill_o say_v that_o the_o commandment_n speak_v only_o of_o create_a god_n whereas_o philo_n hold_v his_o second_o god_n to_o be_v eternal_a and_o consequent_o a_o uncreated_a god_n it_o be_v absurd_a to_o think_v that_o a_o jew_n will_v have_v admit_v of_o a_o second_o uncreated_a god_n as_o if_o there_o can_v be_v many_o uncreated_a cudworth_n overlookt_a that_o philo_n speak_v as_o a_o platonist_n allegorize_v upon_o the_o intelligible_a world_n which_o he_o call_v the_o second_o god_n inasmuch_o as_o he_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o emanation_n of_o the_o divine_a understanding_n even_o as_o the_o plan_n and_o the_o idea_n of_o a_o building_n be_v the_o emanation_n of_o the_o understanding_n of_o a_o architect_n that_o intend_v to_o build_v it_o according_a to_o this_o image_n which_o be_v a_o comparison_n very_o samiliar_a to_o the_o platonic_n as_o you_o will_v find_v it_o in_o philo_n himself_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr mundi_fw-la opificio_fw-la the_o intelligible_a world_n say_v he_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n prepare_v itself_o to_o create_v the_o world_n even_o as_o a_o intelligible_a city_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o reason_v of_o the_o architect_n that_o design_n to_o build_v a_o city_n according_a to_o the_o plan_n that_o he_o form_v of_o it_o in_o his_o mind_n now_o can_v any_o one_o be_v ignorant_a that_o this_o internal_a word_n this_o city_n or_o this_o intelligible_a world_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o architect_n and_o consequent_o the_o architect_n himself_o from_o whence_o we_o discover_v the_o reason_n why_o philo_n who_o own_a the_o second_n god_n of_o the_o platonist_n will_v not_o platonize_v yet_o further_o be_v unwilling_a to_o admit_v of_o their_o three_o god_n for_o fear_v of_o contradict_v his_o religion_n which_o can_v not_o allow_v the_o create_a world_n to_o be_v a_o god_n the_o platonist_n call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o creature_n if_o he_o go_v no_o further_o it_o be_v because_o he_o may_v carry_v on_o his_o allegory_n so_o far_o as_o to_o the_o make_n of_o a_o second_o god_n of_o the_o image_n which_o be_v in_o the_o divine_a understanding_n and_o which_o be_v god_n himself_o but_o he_o can_v not_o without_o danger_n carry_v it_o on_o as_o far_o as_o the_o visible_a world_n which_o be_v a_o creature_n so_o as_o to_o make_v it_o a_o three_o god_n see_v this_o three_o god_n as_o petavius_n remark_n annot._fw-la ad_fw-la syness_n in_o calv._n encomium_fw-la be_v nothing_o else_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o platonist_n and_o stoic_n but_o the_o sensible_a world_n only_o cicero_n 2._o de_fw-fr natura_fw-la deor._n and_o be_v the_o same_o that_o philo_n call_v the_o only_a son_n who_o father_n be_v god_n and_o his_o mother_n wisdom_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o that_o other_o which_o the_o same_o author_n call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o intelligible_a world_n i_o say_v the_o word_n this_o be_v the_o name_n he_o always_o give_v to_o the_o intelligible_a world_n never_o call_v it_o the_o son_n as_o he_o do_v the_o sensible_a world_n see_v maldon_n in_o joh._n 1.1_o but_o when_o philo_n sometime_o give_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n he_o understand_v by_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n no_o more_o as_o cudworth_n have_v own_a than_o the_o word_n itself_o or_o the_o second_o god_n to_o who_o he_o may_v give_v different_a name_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o notion_n that_o he_o form_v either_o of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o wisdom_n or_o power_n etc._n etc._n but_o however_o it_o be_v it_o be_v always_o whilst_o he_o consider_v the_o thing_n in_o god_n and_o never_o out_o of_o god_n nor_o in_o the_o create_v world_n in_o this_o same_o sense_n st._n john_n say_v that_o the_o word_n that_o make_v all_o thing_n be_v in_o god_n and_o that_o the_o life_n or_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o that_o word_n not_o distinguish_v at_o all_o the_o soul_n from_o the_o word_n as_o the_o platonist_n do_v you_o may_v judge_n by_o this_o whether_o mr._n le_fw-fr clerc_n have_v good_a ground_n to_o quote_v philo_z in_o his_o paraphrase_n upon_o st._n john_n as_o one_o of_o those_o who_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o mystery_n of_o three_o in_o the_o deity_n philo_z have_v say_v first_o that_o in_o the_o literal_a sense_n the_o three_o man_n that_o appear_v to_o abraham_n be_v three_o angel_n he_o afterward_o go_v on_o to_o the_o hide_a and_o allegoric_a sense_n where_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v god_n accompany_v by_o his_o two_o power_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v that_o power_n that_o create_v the_o world_n the_o other_o that_o wisdom_n which_o conduct_n and_o govern_v it_o god_n say_v he_o between_o these_o two_o power_n present_v to_o a_o enlighten_v soul_n sometime_o one_o image_n only_o sometime_o three_o for_o our_o soul_n see_v but_o one_o image_n when_o be_v purify_v by_o contemplation_n she_o raise_v herself_o above_o all_o number_n and_o advance_v to_o that_o pure_a and_o simple_a idea_n which_o be_v one_o and_o independent_a of_o all_o other_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o soul_n consider_v three_o of_o they_o when_o not_o be_v as_o yet_o initiate_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o first_o order_n she_o stop_v at_o the_o small_a viz._n when_o not_o be_v capable_a of_o comprehend_v he_o who_o be_v consider_v in_o himself_o and_o without_o any_o foreign_a aid_n she_o seek_v he_o in_o his_o several_a relation_n of_o creator_n and_o king_n the_o mystery_n of_o three_o then_o according_a to_o he_o be_v for_o low_a soul_n who_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o comprehend_v god_n in_o his_o unity_n independent_o of_o all_o creature_n and_o that_o seek_v he_o in_o the_o work_v of_o creation_n and_o providence_n but_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o purify_a soul_n be_v to_o raise_v themselves_o by_o a_o contemplation_n transcend_v all_o creature_n towards_o that_o only_a and_o simple_a idea_n that_o have_v nothing_o common_a with_o the_o rest_n last_o he_o pretend_v that_o there_o be_v a_o three_o sense_n differ_v from_o that_o of_o the_o contemplation_n which_o he_o seem_v beside_o to_o call_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o which_o it_o be_v he_o who_o be_v with_o his_o two_o power_n but_o this_o last_o can_v be_v the_o literal_a sense_n see_v it_o will_v be_v contradictory_n to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o literal_a sense_n they_o be_v three_o angel_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n it_o be_v he_o who_o be_v with_o his_o two_o power_n beside_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o will_v confound_v this_o last_o sense_n with_o the_o second_o which_o
yet_o he_o distinguish_v careful_o we_o ought_v then_o to_o say_v that_o this_o last_o sense_n if_o we_o will_v distinguish_v it_o well_o from_o the_o other_o two_o must_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o oeconomy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v indeed_o three_o angel_n but_o that_o the_o first_o of_o they_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o jehova_n and_o represent_v his_o person_n it_o be_v for_o this_o reason_n he_o assure_v that_o this_o sense_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n account_n because_o it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a style_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o give_v the_o name_n of_o jehova_n to_o that_o angel_n in_o who_o god_n have_v put_v his_o name_n that_o sense_n be_v not_o the_o literal_a one_o which_o own_v but_o three_o angel_n only_o as_o to_o their_o nature_n nor_o the_o sublime_a sense_n that_o find_v there_o god_n himself_o with_o his_o sundry_a relation_n of_o a_o creator_n and_o king_n but_o it_o be_v a_o oeconomical_a sense_n which_o make_v the_o first_o who_o be_v but_o a_o angel_n by_o his_o nature_n to_o be_v jehova_n in_o respect_n to_o his_o office_n because_o he_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o jehova_n and_o speak_v by_o his_o authority_n whereas_o the_o other_o two_o angel_n be_v not_o consider_v here_o but_o as_o two_o power_n of_o the_o supreme_a god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o minister_n of_o he_o who_o represent_v jehova_n and_o as_o such_o they_o be_v send_v to_o destroy_v sodom_n this_o execution_n be_v beneath_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o first_o we_o need_v consult_v only_a philo_n himself_o to_o know_v what_o he_o understand_v by_o these_o divine_a power_n and_o to_o be_v convince_v that_o he_o intend_v no_o nicety_n whilst_o he_o make_v they_o to_o be_v two_o or_o three_o but_o follow_v the_o text_n herein_o which_o speak_v here_o of_o three_o angel_n elsewhere_o he_o reckon_v a_o great_a number_n of_o they_o for_o in_o two_o other_o book_n of_o his_o de_fw-fr opificio_fw-la &_o de_fw-la profugis_fw-la he_o give_v we_o clear_o to_o understand_v that_o by_o the_o power_n wherewith_o god_n be_v accompany_v he_o mean_v only_a angel_n see_v he_o make_v they_o share_v the_o creation_n of_o man_n with_o the_o supreme_a god_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o the_o supreme_a god_n will_v not_o be_v the_o author_n of_o what_o be_v evil_a in_o man._n he_o therefore_o leave_v to_o the_o angel_n the_o care_n of_o make_v the_o mortal_a part_n of_o his_o soul_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o passion_n reserve_v to_o himself_o alone_o the_o superior_a part_n where_o reason_n have_v dominion_n it_o be_v in_o this_o sense_n according_a to_o he_o that_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o plural_a let_v we_o make_v man_n according_a to_o our_o image_n you_o according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o creature_n in_o make_v he_o capable_a of_o evil_a but_o i_o according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o deity_n in_o make_v he_o capable_a of_o good_n and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n he_o attribute_n sometime_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o this_o first_o angel_n who_o he_o call_v the_o word_n or_o the_o son_n of_o god_n suppose_v always_o that_o this_o work_n how_o excellent_a soever_o in_o itself_o yet_o be_v beneath_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o that_o god_n can_v not_o put_v his_o hand_n to_o it_o without_o injure_v his_o greatness_n can_v so_o able_a a_o philosopher_n as_o philo_n be_v capable_a of_o give_v a_o task_n which_o he_o think_v unworthy_a of_o god_n to_o power_n which_o he_o think_v to_o be_v equal_a to_o and_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o he_o now_o to_o return_v to_o the_o text_n we_o examine_v let_v we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v three_o angel_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n and_o that_o in_o the_o two_o other_o sense_n it_o be_v he_o who_o be_v with_o his_o two_o power_n but_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o a_o double_a meaning_n in_o the_o second_o sense_n viz._n that_o of_o the_o allegory_n he_o who_o be_v with_o his_o two_o power_n denote_v god_n himself_o with_o his_o sundry_a operation_n whereas_o in_o the_o three_o sense_n which_o be_v the_o occonomical_a one_o the_o same-term_n signify_v only_o he_o who_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o god_n with_o two_o other_o angel_n that_o serve_v he_o as_o minister_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o three_o interpretation_n of_o philo_n explain_v the_o which_o it_o seem_v mr._n le_fw-fr clerc_n understand_v not_o the_o first_o have_v nothing_o that_o be_v platonical_a but_o be_v pure_o a_o historical_a sense_n viz._n that_o three_o angel_n in_o a_o human_a shape_n present_v themselves_o to_o abraham_n the_o three_o have_v nothing_o of_o platonism_n neither_o it_o be_v a_o theological_a sense_n to_o wit_n the_o sense_n of_o all_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o all_o the_o christian_n who_o understand_v the_o ancient_a dispensation_n the_o second_o that_o remain_v be_v not_o platonical_a neither_o if_o you_o take_v it_o with_o philo_n allegorical_o that_o be_v in_o a_o arbitrary_a sense_n wherein_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v raise_v to_o speculation_n and_o idea_n that_o have_v no_o foundation_n or_o any_o reality_n in_o the_o text._n this_o last_o interpretation_n of_o philo_n will_v be_v true_o platonical_a if_o he_o understand_v by_o the_o three_o he_o speak_v of_o either_o three_o hypostasis_n or_o three_o distinct_a person_n whereas_o he_o understand_v there_o but_o one_o only_a person_n under_o three_o different_a respect_n to_o wit_n god_n consider_v either_o in_o himself_o he_o who_o be_v or_o in_o relation_n to_o we_o inasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v our_o creator_n and_o our_o king_n this_o be_v what_o philo_n call_v the_o jehova_n with_o his_o two_o power_n one_o may_v indeed_o call_v this_o a_o platonical_a sense_n provide_v plato_n be_v understand_v as_o he_o ought_v who_o under_o the_o allegory_n of_o three_o hypostasis_n design_v to_o inform_v we_o of_o nothing_o else_o but_o only_o a_o all-good_a alwise_a and_o all-powerful_a god_n both_o in_o the_o creation_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n but_o then_o the_o authority_n of_o plato_n and_o philo_n who_o be_v quote_v as_o have_v speak_v of_o three_o distinction_n in_o the_o deity_n will_v become_v useless_a to_o the_o trinitarian_n chap._n xi_o that_o all_o those_o common_o call_v heretic_n do_v believe_v a_o pre-existent_a word_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n i_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o unitarian_n quarrel_v not_o at_o all_o with_o the_o allegorical_a sense_n of_o philo_n who_o do_v not_o suppose_v three_o hypostasis_n but_o only_o three_o divine_a relation_n or_o god_n with_o his_o two_o power_n ruarus_n in_o his_o epistle_n part_n 1._o p._n 296._o own_v a_o pre-existent_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o create_v the_o world_n and_o dwell_v in_o j._n c._n the_o father_n say_v he_o who_o live_v before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a hold_v a_o pre-existent_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o notwithstanding_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o supreme_a god_n and_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n but_o a_o spirit_n flow_v from_o he_o when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o create_v the_o world_n and_o which_o subsist_v in_o he_o till_o then_o we_o differ_v not_o much_o from_o this_o opinion_n for_o we_o willing_o own_o that_o a_o extraordinary_a spirit_n of_o god_n do_v inseparable_o unite_v itself_o too_o j._n c._n from_o the_o very_a moment_n of_o his_o conception_n and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v incorporate_v with_o he_o a_o spirit_n say_v i_o which_o exist_v in_o god_n before_o his_o conception_n and_o even_o from_o eternity_n nay_o if_o any_o one_o will_v have_v it_o by_o any_o mean_n that_o this_o spirit_n by_o who_o j.c._n perform_v the_o work_n of_o the_o new_a creation_n be_v the_o same_o that_o create_v this_o universe_n we_o shall_v not_o contest_v his_o opinion_n he_o be_v in_o the_o right_n for_o where_o be_v that_o unitarian_n i_o pray_v you_o who_o own_v not_o a_o internal_a word_n and_o a_o eternal_a reason_n which_o always_o subsist_v in_o god_n and_o which_o be_v god_n himself_o as_o mr._n le_fw-fr clerc_n express_v it_o in_o his_o paraphrase_n which_o also_o dwell_v in_o j._n c_o i_o shall_v not_o except_v even_o the_o alogi_fw-la so_o call_v because_o they_o reject_v the_o platonic_a word_n subsist_v out_o of_o god_n himself_o and_o have_v a_o hypostasis_fw-la distinct_a from_o that_o of_o the_o father_n but_o they_o never_o deny_v that_o in_o the_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o father_n there_o be_v not_o a_o reason_n a_o word_n or_o operation_n that_o create_v the_o world_n and_o which_o insinuate_v itself_o into_o the_o flesh_n j._n c._n it_o be_v indeed_o say_v of_o they_o that_o they_o absolute_o reject_v the_o word_n but_o it_o be_v with_o the_o same_o justice_n and_o candour_n as_o some_o modern_n assert_v that_o the_o divine_a grace_n be_v
we_o to_o understand_v that_o when_o the_o platonic_a father_n apply_v these_o losty_a expression_n of_o solomon_n to_o their_o eternal_a word_n they_o do_v not_o or_o can_v not_o do_v it_o but_o by_o the_o way_n of_o a_o accommodation_n or_o allusion_n the_o same_o bishop_n have_v relate_v the_o opinion_n of_o some_o father_n a_o little_a low_o who_o apply_v the_o same_o expression_n of_o solomon_n to_o the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n afterward_o go_v on_o thus_o pag._n 63._o but_o this_o say_v he_o not_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n which_o solomon_n first_o intend_v i_o shall_v not_o build_v my_o paraphrase_n upon_o it_o but_o take_v wisdom_n here_o as_o it_o signify_v in_o other_o place_n of_o this_o book_n and_o have_v be_v hitherto_o describe_v who_o solomon_n now_o celebrate_v for_o her_o most_o venerable_a antiquity_n and_o introduce_v like_o a_o most_o beautiful_a person_n no_o less_o than_o a_o queen_n or_o rather_o some_o divine_a be_v infinite_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o that_o base_a strumpet_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n indeed_o solomon_n have_v make_v she_o speak_v by_o introduce_v she_o as_o a_o person_n and_o exbort_v young_a people_n to_o give_v ear_n to_o she_o she_o speak_v of_o herself_o that_o god_n create_v she_o or_o that_o she_o come_v to_o we_o from_o god_n that_o she_o be_v before_o the_o world_n be_v make_v because_o god_n who_o be_v the_o source_n of_o she_o and_o communicate_v she_o to_o man_n do_v make_v use_n of_o she_o in_o frame_v this_o universe_n also_o that_o king_n reign_n by_o she_o because_o prudence_n and_o good_a counsel_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o a_o good_a government_n notwithstanding_o this_o clear_a and_o natural_a sense_n prejudice_n have_v abuse_v these_o word_n to_o apply_v they_o to_o jesus_n christ_n but_o there_o be_v many_o other_o that_o can_v at_o all_o agree_v to_o he_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o platonic_a father_n be_v allege_v here_o who_o understand_v this_o chapter_n literal_o of_o a_o personal_a wisdom_n i_o own_v it_o but_o the_o same_o father_n have_v also_o and_o that_o with_o no_o less_o pomp_n quote_v that_o passage_n of_o the_o 45th_o psalm_n my_o heart_n be_v indite_v a_o good_a matter_n word_n to_o prove_v the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o j._n c._n we_o just_o laugh_v now_o adays_o at_o so_o ridiculous_a a_o interpretation_n as_o well_o as_o of_o that_o psal_n 110._o from_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o morning_n thou_o have_v the_o dew_n of_o thy_o youth_n which_o the_o ancient_a interpreter_n do_v endeavour_v to_o make_v subservient_fw-fr to_o the_o same_o purpose_n let_v we_o then_o i_o pray_v mistrust_v they_o as_o to_o this_o text_n in_o the_o proverb_n they_o have_v so_o gross_o deceive_v we_o in_o those_o two_o of_o the_o psalm_n which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o same_o end_n as_o frequent_o and_o with_o as_o much_o confidence_n but_o after_o all_o though_o their_o testimony_n shall_v be_v produce_v in_o shoal_n we_o can_v produce_v better_a interpreter_n of_o prov._n 8._o i_o mean_v the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n itself_o the_o wisdom_n and_o ecclesisticus_n which_o though_o they_o be_v apocryphal_a yet_o be_v of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o plato_n the_o author_n of_o these_o two_o have_v probable_o know_v better_a the_o mind_n of_o solomon_n and_o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o author_n of_o the_o wisdom_n have_v make_v use_v of_o the_o same_o prosopopeia_fw-la with_o he_o in_o the_o proverb_n call_v wisdom_n the_o breath_n spirit_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n a_o pure_a stream_n flow_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o almighty_a the_o brightness_n of_o the_o everlasting_a light_n the_o unspotted_a mirror_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o image_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o that_o she_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n he_o go_v on_o like_o the_o author_n of_o the_o proverb_n that_o when_o god_n create_v the_o world_n wisdom_n be_v with_o he_o know_v his_o work_n be_v present_a then_o know_v and_o understand_v all_o thing_n but_o to_o let_v you_o see_v that_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o quality_n or_o virtue_n he_o add_v that_o he_o love_v she_o seek_v she_o out_o from_o his_o youth_n desire_v to_o have_v she_o for_o a_o spouse_n be_v a_o lover_n of_o her_o beauty_n he_o desire_v of_o god_n in_o his_o ardent_a prayer_n to_o give_v she_o to_o he_o to_o send_v she_o out_o of_o the_o heaven_n to_o assist_v he_o to_o teach_v he_o that_o his_o work_n may_v be_v acceptable_a for_o say_v he_o we_o hardly_o guess_v aright_o at_o thing_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n who_o can_v search_v out_o unless_o god_n give_v wisdom_n and_o send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n from_o above_o see_v chap._n 7_o 8_o &_o 9_o the_o same_o author_n speak_v further_o of_o this_o divine_a perfection_n say_v that_o god_n make_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o word_n form_v man_n by_o his_o wisdom_n chap._n 9_o 1_o 2._o take_v the_o word_n and_o wisdom_n for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n viz._n for_o that_o power_n which_o create_v the_o world_n and_o whereof_o wisdom_n be_v but_o a_o emanation_n can_v you_o imagine_v now_o this_o author_n mean_v that_o god_n do_v create_v the_o world_n by_o his_o son_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n can_v such_o a_o thought_n enter_v into_o a_o rational_a creature_n let_v we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la who_o express_v better_o the_o sense_n we_o ought_v to_o give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o solomon_n he_o introduce_v wisdom_n speak_v thus_o of_o herself_o i_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o most_o high_a he_o create_v i_o from_o the_o beginning_n before_o the_o world_n hitherto_o he_o seem_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o person_n but_o explain_v himself_o clear_o ch._n 24._o ver._n 23._o where_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n which_o the_o jew_n name_n wisdom_n by_o way_n of_o excellency_n for_o have_v speak_v of_o wisdom_n under_o other_o figure_n than_o that_o of_o a_o person_n i_o mean_v under_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o palmtree_n a_o olive-tree_n a_o vine_n &c_n &c_n he_o sum_v up_o what_o he_o have_v say_v in_o these_o word_n all_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o most_o high_a even_o the_o law_n which_o moses_n give_v can_v the_o law_n give_v by_o moses_n be_v call_v more_o express_o not_o only_o a_o olive-tree_n or_o a_o vine_n but_o also_o the_o word_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o wisdom_n which_o god_n create_v before_o the_o world_n which_o be_v expression_n visible_o figurative_a the_o which_o under_o the_o fiction_n of_o a_o person_n or_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o vine_n represent_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o we_o sometime_o as_o reveal_v itself_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o again_o as_o replenish_n man_n with_o the_o fruit_n of_o its_o knowledge_n in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o law_n this_o kind_n of_o fiction_n be_v familiar_a to_o the_o moralist_n jew_n and_o to_o all_o the_o oriental_a philosopher_n you_o must_v be_v purblind_a if_o you_o discern_v not_o immediate_o the_o genius_n of_o that_o people_n accustom_a to_o a_o figurative_a and_o parabolic_a style_n st._n john_n imitate_v the_o moralist_n jew_n and_o according_a to_o the_o same_o idea_n have_v at_o one_o view_v represent_v to_o we_o the_o word_n or_o wisdom_n of_o god_n manifest_v himself_o to_o man_n in_o two_o of_o the_o great_a of_o his_o dispensation_n viz._n in_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a creation_n the_o method_n be_v the_o same_o absolute_o you_o need_v only_o put_v the_o gospel_n or_o the_o author_n of_o the_o gospel_n instead_o of_o moses_n and_o the_o law_n you_o may_v real_o see_v he_o join_v these_o two_o thing_n together_o viz._n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n reside_v in_o god_n himself_o and_o preside_v at_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o same_o wisdom_n descend_v upon_o j._n c._n in_o who_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v incarnate_v and_o order_v the_o new_a world_n for_o if_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o law_n be_v the_o wisdom_n or_o the_o word_n or_o precept_n by_o way_n of_o excellency_n much_o more_o do_v this_o great_a elogium_fw-la belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n namely_o to_o be_v the_o word_n the_o wisdom_n the_o truth_n the_o light_n and_o the_o life_n by_o way_n of_o excellency_n an_fw-mi elogium_fw-la consequent_o belong_v to_o j._n c._n who_o bring_v the_o word_n and_o the_o life_n and_o be_v the_o great_a teacher_n of_o truth_n whatever_o the_o scripture_n say_v of_o the_o first_o creation_n
by_o his_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o command_n and_o order_n of_o god_n see_v grotius_n on_o joh._n 10_o 3●_n what_o be_v become_v now_o of_o the_o mystery_n whence_o come_v such_o a_o gross_a mistake_n the_o learned_a hammond_n quote_v this_o paraphrase_n in_o luke_n 1.2_o do_v read_v it_o indeed_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o his_o word_n which_o be_v just_a what_o these_o gentleman_n will_v be_v at_o but_o if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v it_o be_v without_o any_o authority_n nor_o do_v i_o think_v that_o if_o such_o a_o read_n be_v sound_a in_o any_o copy_n either_o in_o manuscript_n or_o print_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v to_o the_o common_a read_n which_o be_v ground_v as_o we_o have_v show_v on_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o hebrew_n beside_o we_o may_v assert_v without_o any_o fear_n of_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o alteration_n in_o the_o original_a term_n it_o be_v not_o do_v to_o favour_v the_o heretic_n we_o may_v presume_v the_o contrary_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o dr._n bull_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a quote_v a_o paraphrase_n we_o have_v not_o to_o prove_v the_o false_a read_n but_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o those_o who_o say_v they_o have_v see_v it_o see_v but_o a_o latin_a translation_n which_o have_v it_o verbo_fw-la svo_fw-la in_o the_o ablative_a as_o the_o grammarian_n term_v it_o by_o his_o word_n and_o it_o be_v the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o latin_a construction_n that_o impose_v on_o those_o who_o see_v not_o the_o original_a so_o true_a it_o be_v that_o error_n always_o beget_v a_o mystery_n and_o that_o even_o a_o grammatical_a ambiguity_n be_v capable_a to_o furnish_v we_o with_o high-flown_a and_o gorgeous_a one_o what_o make_v i_o think_v so_o be_v this_o that_o i_o have_v observe_v the_o like_a ambiguity_n in_o the_o author_n of_o the_o imperfect_a work_n on_o st._n matthew_n in_o mat._n 8.8_o this_o evangelist_n bring_v in_o the_o centurion_n speak_v lord_n speak_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o author_n allegorise_v no_o doubt_n on_o the_o term_n word_n make_v he_o deliver_v himself_o thus_o lord_n you_o have_v need_v only_o to_o command_v one_o of_o your_o messenger_n and_o angel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o my_o servant_n shall_v be_v heal_v whereas_o he_o mean_v only_o that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v speak_v the_o word_n although_o i_o will_v not_o condemn_v absolute_o the_o explication_n of_o this_o author_n because_o it_o be_v somewhat_o plausible_a if_o we_o regard_v how_o the_o centurion_n go_v on_o for_o i_o be_o say_v he_o a_o man_n under_o authority_n have_v soldier_n under_o i_o and_o i_o say_v unto_o this_o man_n go_v and_o he_o go_v and_o to_o another_o come_v and_o he_o come_v and_o to_o my_o servant_n do_v this_o and_o he_o do_v it_o these_o expression_n seem_v to_o insinuate_v indeed_o that_o he_o intend_v j._n c._n shall_v command_v some_o one_o of_o his_o servant_n as_o he_o command_v his_o own_o speak_v to_o a_o angel_n or_o to_o any_o one_o of_o your_o disciple_n to_o go_v and_o heal_v my_o servant_n and_o my_o servant_n shall_v be_v heal_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n a_o angel_n or_o a_o apostle_n will_v have_v be_v the_o word_n of_o j._n c._n even_o as_o j._n c._n himself_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n if_o you_o take_v it_o thus_o i_o shall_v grant_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o the_o paraphra_v in_o this_o place_n mean_v the_o messiah_n by_o that_o term_n word_n the_o judgement_n of_o father_n simon_n upon_o these_o paraphrase_n deserve_v your_o notice_n hist_o critic_n du_fw-fr v._n t._n lib._n 2._o ch_n 18._o it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o galatine_n and_o many_o other_o divine_n after_o he_o make_v use_v of_o these_o paraphrase_n to_o establish_v some_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o jew_n principal_o those_o relate_n to_o the_o messiah_n but_o although_o these_o proof_n seem_v conclusive_a as_o to_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o their_o book_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o advantageous_a to_o the_o christian_a religion_n to_o have_v recourse_n to_o book_n stuff_v with_o fable_n beside_o the_o passage_n we_o believe_v to_o favour_v our_o religion_n consist_v chief_o but_o in_o allegory_n it_o will_v be_v easy_a for_o the_o jew_n to_o evade_v they_o for_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o mystery_n invincible_o by_o allegory_n but_o if_o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o discovery_n the_o trinitarian_n will_v still_o insist_v upon_o these_o paraphrast_n to_o authorise_v their_o pretend_a mystery_n we_o shall_v be_v alarm_v so_o little_a at_o the_o advantage_n they_o pretend_v to_o get_v by_o they_o that_o we_o shall_v over_o and_o above_o lend_v they_o this_o passage_n of_o the_o targum_fw-la of_o jerusalem_n extreme_o fit_a to_o prove_v the_o pre-existence_n of_o their_o word_n glassius_n relate_v it_o philol._n p._n 22._o the_o paraphra_v expound_v these_o word_n behold_v adam_n be_v become_v as_o one_o of_o we_o bring_v in_o the_o word_n speak_v to_o his_o father_n papa_n behold_v adam_n who_o you_o have_v create_v who_o be_v your_o only_a son_n on_o earth_n as_o i_o be_o your_o only_a son_n in_o heaven_n it_o seem_v as_o if_o the_o word_n be_v please_v that_o he_o have_v a_o brother_n and_o a_o compare_v on_o shall_v we_o never_o be_v ashamed_a of_o these_o rabbinick_n frenzy_n or_o rather_o of_o these_o platonic_a imposture_n chap._n xvii_o concern_v the_o method_n of_o the_o sacred_a writer_n and_o some_o of_o their_o disciple_n viz._n hermas_n barnabas_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o writer_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v jew_n by_o birth_n do_v affect_v according_a to_o the_o genius_n of_o that_o people_n a_o analogick_n sense_n and_o accommodation_n find_v every_o where_o relation_n between_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a testament_n every_o body_n know_v how_o they_o have_v adapt_v one_o history_n to_o another_o one_o event_n to_o another_o event_n and_o of_o what_o nature_n be_v their_o frequent_a allusion_n and_o allegory_n on_o this_o wise_a to_o omit_v other_o example_n what_o moses_n say_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n produce_v the_o creature_n out_o of_o nothing_o st._n john_n accommodate_v to_o that_o word_n of_o j._n c._n which_o form_n man_n anew_o and_o manifest_v the_o power_n of_o god_n demonstrate_v by_o miracle_n that_o all_o creature_n obey_v he_o j._n c._n being_n not_o so_o much_o the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o the_o instrument_n of_o his_o power_n you_o will_v find_v this_o analogick_n sense_n may_v be_v observe_v in_o most_o of_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v apply_v to_o the_o new_a beza_n on_o 2_o cor._n 4.6_o call_v this_o sense_n anagogical_n that_o be_v to_o say_v spiritual_a sublime_a mystical_a and_o exalt_v above_o the_o pitch_n of_o the_o letter_n see_v scult_a exerc._n evangel_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 62._o where_o he_o speak_v at_o large_a of_o the_o manner_n how_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v accomplish_v analogical_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n say_v he_o be_v not_o always_o allege_v to_o confirm_v a_o thing_n but_o to_o illustrate_v it_o by_o a_o ingenious_a and_o well-contrived_a accommodation_n which_o be_v very_o familiar_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o therapeutes_fw-gr or_o jewish_a philosopher_n of_o alexandria_n retain_v this_o way_n of_o interpret_n the_o more_o willing_o because_o it_o be_v altogether_o conformable_a to_o the_o method_n of_o the_o platonist_n among_o who_o they_o live_v eusebius_n relate_v hist_o eccl._n lib._n 2._o c._n 16._o that_o they_o have_v the_o mere_o allegorical_a commentary_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o that_o in_o expound_v the_o scripture_n they_o philosophised_a after_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o predecessor_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o way_n of_o figure_n and_o allegory_n pretend_v that_o the_o letter_n be_v but_o a_o shell_n wherein_o many_o mystery_n be_v enclose_v the_o most_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n hermas_n and_o barnabas_n do_v follow_v this_o method_n of_o the_o jew_n search_v for_o a_o spiritual_a mean_v in_o the_o fact_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o order_n to_o adapt_v they_o to_o the_o new_a but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o to_o bring_v in_o such_o platonic_a idea_n as_o obtain_v some_o time_n after_o in_o the_o christian_a religion_n the_o follow_a father_n have_v not_o only_o carry_v their_o allegory_n too_o far_o and_o exceed_v the_o ancient_a manner_n of_o affect_v mystical_a sense_n but_o also_o spoil_v this_o method_n by_o join_v gross_a platonism_n with_o it_o which_o personalize_v every_o thing_n
and_o upon_o the_o cross_n of_o j.c._n whereof_o he_o have_v find_v a_o thousand_o figure_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o people_n of_o old_a which_o he_o bring_v to_o his_o bent_n by_o violence_n and_o artifice_n he_o seek_v particular_o for_o a_o sublime_a sense_n in_o the_o name_n of_o joshua_n or_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o nun._n he_o say_v that_o the_o father_n have_v show_v we_o in_o joshua_n every_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v say_v of_o his_o son_n jesus_n insomuch_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v according_a to_o he_o that_o j._n c._n bring_v the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n because_o he_o have_v do_v it_o in_o joshua_n his_o figure_n or_o rather_o because_o he_o do_v the_o same_o in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n so_o that_o j._n c._n be_v joshua_n by_o who_o so_o many_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n j._n c._n be_v the_o word_n by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v i_o say_v the_o word_n for_o although_o barnabas_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o it_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n yet_o he_o make_v a_o allusion_n thereto_o in_o these_o word_n let_v we_o make_v man_n which_o he_o apply_v to_o j._n c._n last_o barnabas_n add_v behold_v here_o jesus_n again_o not_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o appear_v in_o flesh_n in_o his_o figure_n who_o see_v not_o here_o that_o jesus_n the_o son_n not_o of_o a_o man_n as_o joshua_n be_v but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n do_v manifest_v himself_o in_o flesh_n in_o a_o typical_a and_o figurative_a manner_n in_o the_o person_n of_o joshua_n we_o may_v say_v likewise_o according_a to_o this_o way_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n that_o the_o same_o jesus_n create_v the_o world_n in_o the_o person_n of_o that_o spirit_n or_o of_o that_o word_n which_o speak_v and_o the_o creature_n appear_v because_o that_o first_o word_n be_v the_o type_n of_o that_o other_o word_n which_o insinuate_v itself_o into_o j._n c._n and_o which_o say_v for_o example_n lazarus_n come_v forth_o and_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o immediate_o out_o of_o his_o tomb_n and_o from_o the_o dead_a that_o give_v life_n and_o so_o do_v this_o you_o may_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o most_o of_o the_o father_n do_v say_v that_o j._n c._n appear_v to_o the_o patriarch_n because_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o angel_n in_o a_o human_a shape_n be_v the_o type_n of_o his_o manifestation_n in_o flesh_n hence_o come_v it_o that_o clement_n of_o alexandria_n call_v he_o the_o mystical_a angel_n the_o angel_n be_v j._n c._n in_o a_o type_n and_o j._n c._n be_v the_o angel_n in_o a_o mystery_n moreover_o barnabas_n continue_v his_o allegory_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n and_o the_o temple_n whence_o he_o be_v continual_o draw_v forth_o mystical_a interpretation_n and_o have_v run_v over_o all_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o spiritual_a application_n he_o make_v of_o they_o to_o j._n c._n and_o his_o church_n he_o call_v this_o parable_n and_o conclude_v you_o have_v here_o say_v he_o all_o that_o regard_v the_o glory_n of_o j._n c._n viz._n how_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v for_o he_o and_o by_o he_o where_o by_o all_o thing_n without_o doubt_n all_o those_o dispensation_n of_o the_o old_a oeconomy_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v which_o have_v any_o relation_n to_o he_o to_o his_o birth_n death_n or_o resurrection_n the_o which_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v do_v not_o literal_o but_o spiritual_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o prophet_n who_o be_v his_o figure_n this_o be_v so_o clear_a by_o the_o sequel_n and_o coherence_n of_o his_o discourse_n that_o i_o have_v be_v amaze_v at_o the_o confidence_n of_o dr._n bull_n who_o in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a p._n 67._o dare_v to_o quote_v these_o word_n as_o if_o barnabas_n have_v say_v they_o of_o the_o first_o creation_n for_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o these_o expression_n be_v serviceable_a to_o his_o hypothesis_n that_o they_o demonstrate_v on_o the_o contrary_a how_o these_o word_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o j._n c._n be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o be_v because_o either_o he_o do_v they_o in_o his_o type_n as_o barnabas_n teach_v we_o here_o or_o because_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o same_o power_n or_o one_o like_a to_o that_o which_o create_v the_o old_a world_n and_o inspire_v the_o prophet_n do_v dwell_v in_o j._n c._n whoever_o know_v the_o character_n of_o barnabas_n but_o a_o little_a must_v be_v very_o conceit_v if_o he_o give_v any_o other_o sense_n to_o his_o word_n see_v here_o the_o judgement_n of_o mr._n du_n pin_n concern_v he_o biblioth_n tom._n 1._o at_o the_o word_n barnabas_n the_o epistle_n of_o this_o father_n say_v he_o be_v full_a of_o force_a allegory_n on_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o with_o extraordinary_a explication_n deviate_a from_o good_a sense_n but_o these_o allegory_n these_o mystical_a explication_n and_o fable_n hinder_v not_o this_o epistle_n from_o be_v his_o who_o name_n it_o bear_v you_o must_v have_v but_o a_o small_a insight_n into_o the_o genius_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o first_o christian_n bring_v up_o in_o the_o synagogue_n if_o you_o believe_v that_o such_o kind_n of_o thought_n can_v not_o be_v they_o on_o the_o contrary_a this_o be_v their_o very_a character_n they_o learn_v of_o the_o jew_n to_o turn_v the_o scripture_n into_o a_o allegory_n we_o ought_v not_o then_o to_o wonder_v that_o st._n barnabas_n a_o jew_n by_o birth_n and_o write_v to_o the_o jew_n shall_v explain_v allegorical_o many_o of_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o new_a every_o body_n know_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n be_v full_a of_o this_o sort_n of_o fable_n and_o allegory_n mr._n le_fw-fr moine_n be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n in_o his_o note_n on_o barnabas_n to_o conclude_v the_o term_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v very_o familiar_a to_o this_o author_n he_o mean_v by_o it_o a_o sublime_a and_o profound_a sense_n this_o appear_v by_o his_o infinite_o extol_v this_o knowledge_n which_o he_o also_o name_v science_n and_o wisdom_n above_o the_o virtue_n which_o accompany_v faith_n this_o way_n of_o distinguish_a science_n from_o faith_n be_v follow_v by_o origen_n it_o seem_v that_o gnosticism_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o this_o allegoric_a science_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o afterward_o degenerate_v into_o poetical_a speculation_n and_o a_o heathenish_a philosophy_n the_o first_o method_n be_v jewish_n the_o second_o platonic_a all_o which_o seem_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o author_n of_o this_o epistle_n be_v a_o true_a gnostic_n i_o mean_v one_o of_o the_o first_o of_o they_o who_o imitate_v the_o jewish_a cabala_n in_o their_o mystical_a interpretation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v account_v a_o sublime_a science_n but_o not_o one_o of_o those_o gnostic_n who_o be_v afterward_o decry_v for_o convert_v that_o allegoric_a science_n into_o a_o philosophy_n mere_o pagan_a for_o these_o last_o who_o be_v gentile_a proselyte_n imagine_v they_o have_v the_o same_o right_n with_o the_o proselyte_n jew_n to_o the_o use_n of_o these_o allegoric_a interpretation_n adapt_v present_o the_o theogony_n of_o their_o poet_n and_o the_o idea_n of_o plato_n to_o the_o evangelical_n truth_n the_o former_a seek_v for_o a_o mystical_a sense_n of_o the_o law_n but_o the_o latter_a the_o sublime_a sense_n of_o philosophy_n both_o of_o they_o in_o relation_n to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o holy_a doctrine_n those_o of_o the_o latter_a sort_n who_o pass_v the_o bound_n in_o this_o method_n and_o make_v so_o wide_a a_o pleroma_n be_v call_v heretic_n but_o those_o that_o use_v it_o with_o a_o great_a caution_n and_o modesty_n and_o who_o carry_v the_o pleroma_fw-mi no_o further_o than_o the_o three_o aeons_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v some_o ground_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o keep_v a_o decorum_n better_a in_o their_o resemblance_n have_v the_o good_a fortune_n to_o pass_v for_o orthodox_n even_o to_o posterity_n i_o think_v it_o be_v better_a to_o argue_v thus_o about_o the_o author_n of_o this_o epistle_n than_o to_o say_v with_o dr._n hammond_n that_o he_o oppose_v cabala_n to_o cabala_n and_o that_o by_o the_o term_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o attack_n the_o false_a science_n of_o the_o gnostic_n for_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o he_o dispute_v with_o any_o body_n unless_o it_o be_v only_o against_o the_o jew_n who_o will_v not_o receive_v his_o allegory_n however_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o gnosticism_n such_o as_o it_o be_v at_o that_o time_n confine_v to_o mere_a allegory_n on_o the_o scripture_n be_v then_o decry_v on_o the_o contrary_a
ghost_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n they_o call_v he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o they_o confess_v this_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v thus_o the_o word_n of_o st._n austin_n must_v be_v understand_v de_fw-la haeres_fw-la c._n 9_o and_o not_o as_o dr._n bull_n expound_v they_o judic_n eccles_n p._n 47._o by_o a_o hysteron_fw-gr proteron_fw-gr in_o this_o manner_n that_o the_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v according_a to_o he_o a_o son_n beget_v before_o all_o age_n danaus_n a_o better_a critic_n than_o he_o make_v no_o blunder_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o st._n augustine_n word_n the_o nazarene_o say_v he_o believe_v that_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o mary_n be_v the_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v in_o this_o sense_n dei_fw-la filium_fw-la consitentur_fw-la nazaraei_n esse_fw-la christum_fw-la say_v the_o father_n in_o short_a they_o do_v not_o oblige_v the_o gentile_n to_o observe_v the_o law_n which_o they_o think_v themselves_o ought_v to_o keep_v as_o be_v jew_n by_o birth_n but_o they_o afterward_o abandon_v it_o too_o as_o a_o obligation_n that_o cease_v as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o judea_n by_o the_o emperor_n adrian_n there_o be_v a_o great_a confusion_n among_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n in_o their_o judgement_n of_o these_o nazarene_o some_o look_n upon_o they_o as_o heretic_n with_o other_o they_o pass_v for_o orthodox_n the_o latter_a father_n as_o epiphaenius_n st._n austin_n and_o theodoret_n place_v they_o in_o their_o list_n of_o heretic_n but_o the_o more_o ancient_a father_n as_o irenaeus_n and_o tertullian_n have_v not_o set_v they_o down_o in_o that_o catalogue_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o conjecture_v whence_o this_o disagreement_n come_v sometime_o they_o pass_v for_o orthodox_n one_a because_o their_o opinion_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n be_v original_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n some_o remain_v of_o that_o tradition_n maintain_v their_o honour_n for_o a_o time_n 2_o because_o eusebius_n after_o hegesippus_n have_v give_v they_o this_o testimony_n that_o their_o faith_n be_v sound_a as_o we_o have_v before_o show_v now_o this_o historian_n who_o give_v his_o opinion_n of_o they_o according_a to_o his_o own_o prejudices_fw-la mistake_v their_o true_a sentiment_n have_v draw_v other_o platonize_a christian_n after_o he_o into_o the_o same_o mistake_n 3_o the_o nazarene_o believe_v that_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o miraculous_a conception_n of_o our_o saviour_n god_n be_v true_o his_o father_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n they_o give_v he_o the_o title_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o may_v be_v of_o god_n too_o sometime_o the_o platonize_a christian_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v amuse_v with_o big_a word_n have_v their_o mind_n preingaged_n in_o idea_n they_o have_v put_v upon_o they_o beforehand_o so_o that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o treat_v the_o nazarens_fw-la as_o heretic_n that_o they_o have_v often_o make_v they_o speak_v in_o the_o platonic_a manner_n always_o suppose_v through_o prejudice_n that_o whoever_o say_v these_o word_n son_n of_o god_n mean_v by_o they_o a_o son_n beget_v before_o all_o age_n but_o sometime_o also_o they_o reckon_v they_o heretic_n either_o because_o they_o confound_v they_o with_o the_o ebionite_n or_o because_o their_o opinion_n right_o understand_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o heretical_a after_o platonism_n prevail_v when_o all_o those_o in_o short_a who_o go_v for_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n no_o far_o than_o his_o generation_n from_o god_n and_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o who_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v or_o assent_v to_o the_o platonic_a generation_n before_o all_o age_n all_o such_o i_o say_v be_v no_o better_o treat_v than_o the_o ebionite_n who_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o joseph_n they_o be_v all_o anathematise_v without_o hope_n of_o absolution_n it_o be_v from_o this_o confusion_n of_o idea_n that_o we_o meet_v with_o so_o much_o obscurity_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o nazarene_o dr._n bull_n who_o know_v not_o how_o to_o clear_v up_o this_o perplexity_n run_v himself_o into_o great_a difficulty_n he_o teaze_v and_o fatigue_n himself_o to_o maintain_v his_o own_o sentiment_n under_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o nazarene_o and_o to_o reconcile_v the_o irreconcilable_a censure_n of_o the_o platonize_a father_n about_o '_o they_o but_o what_o signify_v all_o this_o ado_n the_o truth_n be_v nothing_o of_o his_o platonism_n be_v in_o the_o least_o know_v to_o the_o nazarene_o all_o his_o citation_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o equivocal_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n the_o son_n of_o god_n true_a it_o be_v they_o go_v beyond_o the_o ebionite_n and_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n be_v more_o than_o a_o mere_a man_n because_o they_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o the_o nazarene_o must_v be_v heretic_n say_v the_o doctor_n what_o he_o will_v if_o they_o be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o his_o platonic_a faith_n but_o they_o be_v also_o orthodox_n say_v other_o what_o they_o please_v if_o they_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o orthodoxy_n that_o prevail_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n the_o footstep_n whereof_o have_v be_v preserve_v by_o some_o writer_n in_o succeed_a age_n as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v finis_fw-la
by_o his_o own_o son_n this_o will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n but_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n a_o divine_a manifestation_n either_o by_o a_o angel_n or_o by_o his_o son_n the_o word_n of_o clement_n will_v produce_v a_o excellent_a sense_n he_o mean_v therefore_o of_o old_a a_o angel_n be_v the_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o presence_n and_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o this_o manifestation_n be_v surprise_v and_o illustrious_a be_v a_o oeconomy_n of_o fear_n but_o now_o a_o man_n like_o unto_o we_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o presence_n and_o his_o oracle_n and_o this_o manifestation_n be_v more_o adapt_v to_o our_o state_n become_v a_o dispensation_n of_o condescendence_n and_o love_n so_o that_o if_o these_o word_n of_o clement_n the_o word_n be_v a_o angel_n do_v signify_v that_o god_n do_v manifest_v himself_o then_o by_o angel_n these_o word_n of_o st._n john_n the_o word_n be_v flesh_n will_v signify_v likewise_o that_o god_n do_v now_o manifest_v himself_o to_o man_n by_o the_o flesh_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o by_o a_o man._n this_o be_v the_o best_a notion_n we_o can_v have_v of_o the_o word_n if_o we_o consult_v the_o scripture_n without_o trouble_v ourselves_o with_o platonic_a vision_n clement_n have_v the_o same_o notion_n and_o his_o word_n be_v remarkable_a since_o they_o give_v we_o a_o definition_n of_o the_o word_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o true_a mean_v of_o it_o the_o word_n say_v he_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o face_n of_o god_n by_o the_o which_o he_o make_v himself_o know_v three_o great_a man_n among_o the_o reformer_n have_v have_v the_o same_o notion_n the_o first_o be_v bucer_n who_o translate_v thus_o the_o word_n of_o st._n john_n et_fw-la deus_fw-la erat_fw-la verbum_fw-la illud_fw-la conformable_o to_o the_o syriac_a version_n which_o have_v it_o thus_o deus_fw-la erat_fw-la ipsum_fw-la verbum_fw-la god_n be_v the_o very_a word_n this_o translation_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v the_o sentiment_n of_o this_o divine_a touch_v the_o word_n he_o mean_v that_o god_n speak_v then_o without_o a_o medium_fw-la or_o the_o organ_n of_o a_o man_n or_o the_o ministry_n of_o a_o angel_n be_v himself_o the_o word_n he_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n by_o himself_o he_o explain_v these_o word_n thus_o i_o will_v say_v he_o translate_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o oracle_n and_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a go_v off_o a_o little_a from_o its_o first_o signification_n and_o render_v it_o the_o divine_a love_n and_o will_n vis_fw-fr illa_fw-la numenve_v the_o reason_n be_v as_o he_o add_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o borrow_v the_o mean_v of_o this_o word_n from_o the_o platonist_n but_o of_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o their_o davar_n which_o the_o greek_n have_v translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o assertion_n be_v sufficient_a we_o desire_v no_o more_o let_v we_o but_o understand_v this_o word_n without_o the_o platonic_a notion_n of_o hypostasis_fw-la a_o son_n beget_v before_o all_o age_n etc._n etc._n let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o hebrew_n who_o never_o understand_v their_o davar_n to_o be_v a_o person_n or_o a_o son_n justin_n be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o platonic_a father_n that_o make_v a_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o a_o power_n or_o a_o manifestation_n have_v alter_v the_o idea_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o prejudices_fw-la he_o bring_v from_o the_o school_n of_o plato_n bucer_n observe_v that_o the_o greek_n viz._n the_o version_n of_o the_o lxx_o render_v the_o word_n davar_fw-mi by_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o effect_v these_o interpreter_n mean_v nothing_o else_o by_o their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o only_o what_o the_o hebrew_n understand_v by_o their_o davar_fw-mi 1._o that_o virtue_n and_o power_n which_o god_n thrust_v forth_o that_o i_o may_v so_o say_v out_o of_o himself_o when_o he_o be_v about_o to_o create_v the_o world_n verbo_fw-la domini_fw-la coeli_fw-la firmati_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o 2._o that_o holy_a breathe_v which_o animate_v the_o prophet_n verbum_fw-la domini_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la prophetam_fw-la now_o this_o twofold_a power_n be_v find_v in_o j._n c._n both_o that_o which_o create_v the_o world_n and_o also_o that_o which_o inspire_v the_o prophet_n you_o see_v in_o the_o very_a work_n of_o his_o miracle_n this_o sermo_n or_o this_o jussus_fw-la divinus_fw-la which_o say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a his_o single_a word_n suffice_v he_o need_v not_o say_v any_o more_o than_o i_o will_v it_o say_v only_o the_o word_n say_v the_o centurion_n to_o he_o and_o my_o servant_n shall_v be_v heal_v you_o see_v moreover_o by_o the_o unction_n receive_v from_o the_o father_n this_o sermo_n propheticus_fw-la by_o the_o mean_n whereof_o he_o have_v declare_v to_o we_o the_o whole_a will_n of_o god_n be_v also_o to_o be_v see_v for_o god_n who_o speak_v at_o other_o time_n to_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v to_o we_o in_o these_o last_o time_n by_o his_o own_o son_n in_o these_o two_o regard_n j._n c._n show_v to_o the_o jew_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o the_o messiah_n put_v himself_o into_o the_o number_n of_o the_o god_n who_o god_n sanctify_v and_o to_o who_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v john_n 10._o viz._n his_o word_n of_o authority_n and_o power_n and_o his_o word_n of_o revelation_n and_o prophecy_n it_o be_v in_o these_o two_o sense_n that_o st._n john_n call_v he_o the_o word_n and_o to_o put_v a_o metaphysical_a signification_n upon_o this_o word_n be_v a_o piece_n of_o philosophical_a extravagancy_n let_v we_o come_v now_o to_o beza_n the_o second_o interpreter_n i_o design_v to_o produce_v on_o john_n 1.1_o this_o author_n have_v relate_v the_o subtle_a and_o metaphysical_a thought_n of_o the_o father_n touch_v the_o word_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a say_v he_o that_o st._n john_n will_v speak_v so_o subtle_o on_o this_o subject_a we_o ought_v rather_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o hebrew_n than_o to_o the_o greek_a phraseology_n for_o although_o st._n john_n write_v in_o greek_a yet_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o in_o teach_v of_o divinity_n and_o above_o all_o in_o reveal_v his_o mystery_n he_o never_o depart_v from_o the_o usual_a way_n of_o speak_v use_v in_o the_o holy_a write_n and_o in_o the_o synagogue_n and_o such_o as_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o people_n now_o according_a to_o he_o the_o jew_n be_v wont_a to_o call_v the_o messiah_n the_o word_n as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v he_o of_o who_o god_n have_v speak_v or_o who_o god_n have_v promise_v the_o bless_a seed_n whereof_o god_n speak_v so_o often_o to_o the_o patriarch_n and_o who_o we_o may_v call_v the_o word_n or_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o excellence_n unless_o it_o be_v say_v as_o he_o go_v on_o that_o this_o name_n be_v give_v he_o because_o he_o be_v the_o only_a interpreter_n of_o the_o father_n by_o who_o he_o have_v manifest_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n but_o although_o this_o last_o interpretation_n do_v not_o please_v he_o so_o much_o as_o the_o former_a yet_o he_o repeat_v continual_o that_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o which_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a divine_n embrace_v so_o greedy_o do_v in_o no_o way_n agree_v with_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n this_o be_v manifest_a and_o have_v no_o need_n of_o proof_n if_o we_o discard_v the_o idea_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o platonist_n as_o beza_n pretend_v that_o we_o ought_v farewell_o then_o eternal_a emanation_n and_o generation_n farewell_o internal_a word_n and_o word_n bring_v forth_o farewell_o trin-vnity_n and_o hypostasis_n with_o all_o that_o theological_a jargon_n which_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v form_v upon_o the_o style_n of_o st._n john_n and_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o go_v up_o to_o the_o source_n and_o search_v into_o the_o style_n of_o the_o hebrew_n themselves_o what_o this_o evangelist_n mean_v the_o word_n will_v then_o be_v only_o the_o so_o often_o promise_v and_o so_o long_o expect_v messiah_n of_o who_o god_n speak_v to_o the_o patriarch_n or_o if_o you_o please_v that_o prophet_n who_o be_v to_o interpret_v to_o we_o the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n and_o that_o king_n of_o glory_n in_o who_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v manifest_v mr._n witsius_n may_v also_o be_v one_o of_o those_o interpreter_n of_o the_o logos_fw-la of_o st._n john_n who_o discard_n the_o platonic_a notion_n he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o believe_v that_o st._n john_n borrow_a this_o word_n from_o either_o the_o cabala_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o chaldee_n paraphra_v but_o from_o the_o sacred_a writer_n and_o since_o his_o explication_n
most_o common_o in_o the_o shape_n and_o figure_n of_o a_o man._n some_o of_o the_o ancient_n be_v bold_a enough_o to_o say_v that_o this_o word_n show_v himself_o to_o the_o patriarch_n in_o the_o same_o shape_n of_o face_n with_o which_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v one_o day_n appear_v and_o they_o suppose_v as_o servetus_n have_v well_o explain_v it_o lib._n 3._o p._n 108_o &_o seq_n that_o the_o word_n be_v no_o other_o than_o god_n person_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o image_n whereby_o god_n manifest_v himself_o and_o that_o that_o image_n be_v the_o very_a shape_n of_o jesus_n christ_n man_n there_o be_v according_a to_o they_o but_o one_o only_o divine_a person_n one_o only_a face_n one_o only_a representation_n which_o have_v always_o be_v the_o same_o whether_o in_o god_n immediate_o show_v himself_o in_o create_a light_n or_o in_o angel_n or_o in_o the_o messiah_n who_o speak_v to_o we_o in_o his_o name_n and_o it_o be_v in_o this_o sense_n that_o we_o may_v say_v that_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n be_v eternal_a it_o be_v easy_a to_o apprehend_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o father_n they_o mean_v that_o the_o word_n be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o idea_n of_o jesus_n christ_n man_n who_o be_v in_o god_n understanding_n from_o all_o eternity_n be_v put_v forth_o in_o a_o visible_a form_n god_n who_o design_v to_o manifest_v himself_o in_o time_n by_o his_o messiah_n have_v from_o the_o beginning_n even_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o universe_n give_v prelude_v of_o his_o great_a design_n in_o show_v himself_o to_o either_o angel_n or_o man_n only_o under_o the_o visible_a form_n which_o his_o son_n be_v in_o time_n to_o have_v which_o he_o describe_v in_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o manifestation_n and_o of_o his_o presence_n whether_o by_o a_o angel_n by_o light_n or_o by_o a_o cloud_n so_o that_o to_o speak_v proper_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n because_o the_o same_o power_n which_o make_v the_o world_n become_v the_o power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o same_o shape_n of_o face_n which_o appear_v to_o the_o patriarch_n be_v make_v the_o shape_n of_o his_o face_n and_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o flesh_n i_o do_v not_o defend_v this_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n i_o only_o show_v what_o it_o be_v without_o oblige_v myself_o to_o maintain_v it_o and_o this_o aught_o likewise_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o their_o other_o hypothesis_n be_v that_o as_o it_o will_v the_o patriarch_n be_v by_o those_o kind_n of_o apparition_n accustom_a to_o represent_v god_n to_o themselves_o in_o humane_a shape_n god_n be_v also_o please_v to_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o his_o perfection_n in_o a_o manner_n suit_v to_o the_o idea_n of_o his_o person_n which_o they_o have_v frame_v to_o themselves_o whereon_o maimonides_n observe_v that_o the_o chaldean_a paraphra_v to_o rectify_v that_o idea_n of_o the_o deity_n use_v the_o term_n word_n to_o signify_v in_o a_o less_o familiar_a manner_n the_o several_a dispensation_n of_o providence_n which_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o eye_n hand_n and_o affection_n of_o god_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o paraphra_v intend_v to_o soften_v all_o those_o expression_n which_o seem_v to_o attribute_v to_o god_n corporeal_a part_n and_o human_a passion_n unworthy_a of_o his_o majesty_n do_v in_o their_o stead_n use_v this_o term_n the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o seem_v to_o bring_v into_o our_o mind_n more_o spiritual_a idea_n of_o the_o supreme_a deity_n but_o he_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o if_o it_o be_v unworthy_a of_o god_n to_o have_v eye_n hand_n and_o ear_n attribute_v to_o he_o it_o will_v not_o be_v less_o so_o to_o give_v he_o a_o mouth_n breath_n a_o voice_n and_o speech_n so_o that_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o if_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o figure_n the_o scripture_n mention_n the_o eye_n of_o god_n the_o hand_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v by_o the_o same_o figure_n that_o we_o say_v the_o breath_n of_o god_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o all_o the_o mystery_n pretend_v to_o be_v find_v in_o this_o latter_a expression_n must_v vanish_v and_o we_o learn_v not_o to_o philosophise_v so_o nice_o on_o the_o oeconemy_n wherein_o god_n take_v various_a form_n to_o make_v himself_o the_o better_o know_v to_o we_o or_o on_o manner_n of_o speak_v which_o he_o have_v suit_v to_o our_o weak_a conception_n chap._n v._o how_o the_o philosopher_n and_o particular_o plato_n attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o three_o principle_n a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o three_o principle_n it_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o most_o famous_a philosopher_n pythagoras_n socrates_n and_o plato_n that_o they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n which_o right_o understand_v signify_v no_o more_o than_o that_o they_o have_v hear_v that_o silent_a language_n of_o the_o heaven_n which_o publish_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o declare_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n clemens_n alexandr_n strom._n l._n 5._o p._n 547._o who_o so_o explain_v it_o say_v further_o that_o those_o philosopher_n consider_v the_o structure_n of_o the_o universe_n hear_v moses_n himself_o say_v god_n speak_v and_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o teach_v they_o that_o the_o word_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o truth_n after_o thorough_o philosophize_v on_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o world_n they_o always_o come_v thence_o to_o conclude_v and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o production_n of_o a_o universal_a reason_n and_o of_o a_o infuse_v spirit_n which_o animate_v it_o and_o they_o hold_v these_o first_o cause_n to_o be_v the_o property_n of_o one_o only_a maker_n i_o mean_v the_o most_o perfect_a be_v in_o philosophize_v it_o be_v natural_a first_o to_o consider_v whether_o the_o world_n have_v always_o exi_v or_o whether_o it_o have_v be_v make_v it_o be_v a_o question_n which_o clem._n rom._n make_v to_o himself_o recognit_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 27._o some_o choose_v to_o believe_v the_o world_n eternity_n but_o they_o be_v but_o few_o and_o they_o follow_v the_o system_fw-la of_o ocellus_n lucanus_n other_o who_o be_v wise_a and_o more_o enlighten_v apprehend_v that_o it_o must_v have_v have_v a_o beginning_n and_o these_o last_o philosophised_a according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o time_n be_v lacrus_n the_o question_n be_v far_a to_o know_v how_o and_o by_o who_o the_o world_n have_v be_v make_v the_o whole_a system_n of_o the_o ancient_a philosophy_n run_v upon_o this_o question_n the_o philosopher_n make_v their_o inquiry_n on_o it_o and_o after_o attention_n and_o study_n the_o most_o know_v among_o they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n or_o the_o voice_n of_o nature_n which_o teach_v they_o that_o the_o world_n be_v the_o workmanship_n of_o a_o infinite_o good_a alwise_a and_o omnipotent_a god_n plato_n be_v the_o first_o who_o bring_v this_o system_fw-la to_o perfection_n thales_n hermotimus_n and_o anaxagorus_n discover_v a_o spirit_n which_o dispose_v matter_n and_o clothe_v it_o with_o its_o several_a form_n socrates_n add_v that_o this_o spirit_n which_o govern_v the_o world_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o than_o plato_n philosophize_v yet_o far_a frame_v a_o kind_n of_o trinity_n 〈◊〉_d p●tav_n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o for_o he_o conceive_v a_o most_o good_a god_n who_o he_o call_v the_o father_n or_o the_o good_a most_o wise_a who_o he_o call_v the_o reason_n or_o the_o word_n most_o powerful_a who_o he_o call_v the_o spirit_n or_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n but_o then_o after_o all_o as_o they_o be_v three_o perfection_n which_o be_v inseparable_a from_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o creator_n he_o often_o confound_v their_o operation_n as_o then_o these_o three_o property_n goodness_n wisdom_n and_o power_n make_v up_o the_o whole_a idea_n which_o we_o have_v of_o god_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o creation_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v that_o the_o sound_a philosophy_n fix_v on_o these_o three_o first_o cause_n when_o it_o be_v seek_v the_o origin_n of_o the_o world_n by_o study_v and_o contemplate_v on_o the_o world_n itself_o the_o invisible_a grandeurs_fw-fr of_o god_n say_v st._n paul_n rom._n 1.20_o as_o well_o his_o eternal_a power_n as_o the_o other_o attribute_n of_o his_o godhead_n become_v as_o it_o be_v visible_a in_o be_v clear_o understand_v by_o his_o work_n from_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v therefore_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v by_o behold_v these_o work_n that_o the_o author_n of_o they_o be_v find_v out_o and_o that_o it_o be_v discover_v that_o they_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o infinite_a goodness_n wisdom_n and_o power_n and_o they_o go_v no_o far_o because_o the_o system_fw-la of_o good_a philosophy_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o creation_n prove_v complete_a with_o these_o three_o principle_n as_o have_v be_v already_o
fever_n almost_o as_o the_o superstitious_a use_n some_o word_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o st._n john_n gospel_n which_o they_o hang_v about_o the_o patient_n neck_n as_o i_o myself_o have_v see_v now_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o basilidian_o pass_v for_o the_o first_o author_n among_o christian_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o secret_a and_o of_o the_o platonic_a trinity_n it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o they_o design_v to_o hide_v it_o under_o this_o allegorical_a and_o symbolical_a name_n but_o it_o be_v also_o possible_a that_o this_o name_n contain_v only_o the_o gospel-trinity_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n whereon_o they_o allegorize_v extravagant_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o that_o time_n by_o this_o essay_n which_o we_o have_v be_v make_v it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o we_o can_v give_v a_o rational_a mean_v to_o the_o other_o order_n of_o the_o aeons_n wherewith_o the_o gnostic_n do_v also_o enlarge_v their_o system_n with_o a_o little_a labour_n in_o take_v off_o the_o veil_n of_o allegory_n which_o cover_v the_o hide_a mean_v of_o this_o mysterious_a theology_n one_o may_v easy_o enough_o discover_v that_o the_o true_a aim_n of_o these_o christian_a philosopher_n be_v to_o set_v off_o the_o lowness_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o suppose_a depth_n of_o their_o mystery_n but_o we_o will_v go_v no_o far_o on_o this_o article_n the_o sample_n give_v be_v sufficient_a but_o if_o any_o one_o desire_n proof_n of_o this_o our_o explication_n of_o valentin_n aeons_n that_o he_o conceive_v they_o only_o as_o the_o several_a affection_n of_o the_o divine_a understanding_n or_o as_o so_o many_o dispensation_n of_o providence_n let_v he_o but_o consult_v chap._n 12._o of_o danaeus_n de_fw-fr haeresib_n to_o be_v brief_a we_o will_v here_o quote_v only_o the_o famous_a pearson_n vindic._n ignat._n par._n 2._o c._n 5._o valentin_n say_v he_o make_v a_o open_a profession_n of_o believe_v but_o one_o god_n and_o though_o tertullian_n assert_n somewhat_o rhetorical_o that_o this_o heretic_n believe_v as_o many_o god_n as_o he_o number_v aeons_n that_o father_n himself_o do_v nevertheless_o own_o that_o valentin_n aeons_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o divine_a propertys_n and_o affection_n whereof_o his_o disciple_n afterward_o make_v personal_a substance_n gallasius_n have_v before_o pearson_n observe_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o annotat._n in_o lib._n 1._o irenaei_n for_o he_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o tertullian_n ptolemy_n say_v that_o father_n follow_v valentin_n doctrine_n only_o he_o make_v personal_a substance_n subsist_v distinct_o from_o god_n of_o what_o valentin_n have_v consider_v only_o as_o affection_n and_o idea_n internal_a and_o intimate_a to_o the_o godhead_n irenaeus_n also_o inform_v we_o that_o by_o these_o aeons_n valentin_n understand_v only_o certain_a disposition_n and_o power_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n summi_fw-la dei_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tantum_fw-la quasdam_fw-la &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o he_o clear_o explain_v in_o his_o l._n 1._o c._n 6._o where_o he_o relate_v the_o system_fw-la of_o the_o discreet_a valentinian_o when_o say_v they_o the_o supreme_a god_n will_v produce_v any_o thing_n he_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n call_v father_n but_o because_o his_o production_n be_v true_a he_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n call_v the_o truth_n and_o then_o when_o he_o will_v produce_v and_o manifest_v himself_o he_o be_v call_v the_o mun._n the_o man_n by_o speak_v beget_v the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o first-born_a son_n all_o which_o show_v that_o allegory_n be_v undetermined_a every_o one_o take_v it_o the_o way_n which_o best_o please_v he_o but_o however_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o all_o agree_v that_o these_o aeons_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o god_n several_a affection_n or_o dispensation_n what_o be_v peculiar_a in_o this_o last_o hypothesis_n be_v that_o man_n which_o signify_v god_n manifest_v himself_o utter_v the_o word_n his_o first-born_a which_o yet_o have_v a_o good_a sense_n according_a to_o mark_v the_o valentinian_n who_o in_o chap._n 10._o of_o the_o same_o book_n say_v that_o god_n to_o give_v a_o visible_a form_n to_o the_o invisible_a grandure_v which_o be_v in_o he_o utter_v his_o word_n like_o himself_o understanding_n by_o the_o word_n only_o the_o visible_a form_n which_o god_n take_v to_o manifest_v himself_o in_o so_o our_o quaker_n understand_v no_o more_o by_o the_o word_n than_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o supreme_a god_n manifest_v himself_o to_o men._n this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o sabellian_o who_o by_o the_o christ_n do_v not_o any_o way_n understand_v a_o man_n but_o only_o divine_a clemency_n and_o heavenly_a aid_n manifest_v itself_o to_o man_n in_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n it_o may_v perhaps_o also_o have_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n who_o as_o we_o have_v already_o see_v call_v the_o word_n the_o most_o manifest_a goodness_n of_o god_n that_o of_o origen_n and_o of_o many_o other_o allegorist_n do_v not_o at_o all_o differ_v from_o it_o since_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n as_o in_o their_o theologise_v son_n as_o they_o speak_v much_o slight_a faith_n and_o the_o sensible_a gospel_n as_o we_o shall_v show_v hereafter_o and_o value_v only_a contemplation_n this_o platonic_a fanaticism_n have_v cerinthus_n for_o its_o author_n who_o careful_o distinguish_v jesus_n the_o son_n of_o mary_n from_o this_o christ_n or_o this_o celestial_a aid_n which_o come_v to_o enlighten_v and_o guide_v man_n and_o it_o be_v now_o adopt_a by_o father_n malebranche_n dr._n more_n and_o mr._n norris_n this_o last_o be_v a_o right_a platonic_a fanatic_a who_o have_v bring_v disorder_n and_o confusion_n into_o both_o the_o speculative_a part_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o duty_n of_o christian_a piety_n his_o several_a treatise_n of_o doctrine_n and_o of_o morality_n show_v that_o the_o dream_n of_o a_o contemplative_a man_n be_v capable_a of_o convert_v the_o most_o sensible_a light_n of_o reason_n and_o revelation_n into_o smoak_n can_v we_o forbear_v judge_v of_o what_o he_o have_v write_v of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o plato_n as_o we_o judge_v of_o what_o he_o have_v write_v concern_v the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o he_o make_v to_o consist_v in_o such_o refine_a contemplation_n and_o enthusiasm_n as_o render_v gospel-morality_n though_o of_o itself_o so_o plain_a and_o natural_a whole_o impracticable_a fanaticism_n all_o over_o and_o if_o we_o see_v it_o in_o the_o morality_n of_o these_o visionary_n why_o do_v we_o not_o perceive_v that_o their_o strain_a platonism_n be_v no_o less_o the_o fruit_n of_o mystical_a theology_n the_o father_n be_v right_a quaker_n in_o their_o system_fw-la of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o if_o we_o will_v not_o be_v quaker_n in_o point_n of_o morality_n let_v we_o keep_v close_o to_o our_o principle_n and_o neither_o be_v so_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o word_n and_o such_o other_o speculative_a point_n as_o have_v be_v render_v incomprehensible_a by_o too_o much_o refine_n of_o they_o if_o i_o may_v say_v what_o i_o think_v this_o gallimaufry_n about_o the_o divine_a word_n which_o be_v define_v see_v the_o treatise_n entitle_v reason_n and_o religion_n a_o intelligible_a world_n archetype_n and_o ideal_o or_o even_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v various_o imitable_a various_o exhibitive_a and_o representative_a of_o all_o thing_n which_o exist_v this_o cant_n i_o say_v be_v suspect_v by_o i_o and_o i_o be_o tempt_v to_o believe_v that_o under_o these_o specious_a name_n nothing_o more_o be_v give_v we_o than_o a_o fair_a system_fw-la of_o my_o understanding_n with_o its_o reason_n and_o idea_n or_o to_o speak_v better_a its_o universal_a and_o unchangeable_a nature_n which_o the_o philosopher_n call_v the_o reality_n and_o truth_n of_o thing_n and_o whereof_o they_o make_v even_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n yea_o i_o dare_v venture_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v deism_n or_o atheism_n disguise_v the_o accusation_n be_v heinous_a and_o require_v proof_n of_o the_o utmost_a evidence_n well_o and_o we_o shall_v produce_v they_o read_v and_o weigh_v these_o word_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la p._n 209._o that_o author_n say_v the_o idea_n of_o a_o triangle_n have_v a_o determinate_a and_o immutable_a nature_n such_o as_o it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n to_o make_v the_o least_o alteration_n in_o which_o be_v a_o certain_a proof_n that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o my_o make_n for_o than_o it_o will_v be_v arbitrary_a and_o i_o may_v change_v it_o as_o i_o please_v but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o absolute_a nature_n distinct_a from_o and_o independent_a of_o my_o understanding_n and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v nothing_o else_o than_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n himself_o modify_v and_o as_o it_o be_v exhibitive_a and_o imitable_a
in_o such_o and_o such_o a_o manner_n since_o nothing_o be_v absolute_o immutable_a but_o god_n himself_o he_o alone_o be_v that_o father_n of_o light_n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o shadow_n of_o turn_v this_o be_v plain_a the_o idea_n of_o a_o triangle_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o god_n modify_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n again_o the_o idea_n of_o a_o owl_n be_v only_o this_o divine_a essence_n so_o modify_v the_o idea_n of_o a_o lobster_n be_v still_o but_o a_o modification_n of_o this_o divine_a essence_n in_o a_o word_n the_o idea_n of_o all_o being_n be_v nothing_o else_o than_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o god_n modify_v in_o such_o or_o such_o a_o manner_n jupiter_n est_fw-la quodcunque_fw-la vides_fw-la quocunque_fw-la moveris_fw-la what_o do_v you_o call_v that_o it_o be_v however_o on_o such_o fine_a discovery_n that_o these_o gentleman_n value_v themselves_o confident_o and_o triumph_o saying_n so_o true_a it_o be_v that_o true_a platonism_n be_v a_o good_a preservative_n against_o socinianism_n yes_o say_v i_o but_o under_o a_o pretence_n of_o preserve_v we_o from_o socinianism_n we_o be_v rude_o rob_v of_o christianity_n let_v we_o once_o more_o venture_n to_o speak_v as_o we_o think_v athenagoras_n tatian_n theophilus_n of_o antioch_n with_o many_o other_o of_o venerable_a rank_n and_o antiquity_n who_o out_o of_o respect_n i_o do_v not_o name_n these_o father_n who_o our_o modern_n imitate_v with_o so_o much_o affectation_n consider_v the_o christian_a religion_n only_o as_o a_o new_a sect_n of_o philosophy_n which_o under_o low_a and_o popular_a similitude_n contain_v the_o most_o hide_a sense_n and_o profound_a mystery_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o natural_a and_o divine_a science_n whereon_o they_o give_v themselves_o free_a scope_n and_o explain_v the_o scripture_n not_o as_o interpreter_n but_o as_o sophistical_a speculative_a philosopher_n pretend_v to_o find_v plato_n mystery_n in_o certain_a term_n much_o as_o our_o chemist_n pretend_v they_o find_v their_o art_n in_o genesis_n or_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n cabala_n every_o where_n i_o shall_v be_v exclaim_v against_o as_o abuse_v those_o great_a man_n but_o wrongful_o all_o our_o critic_n say_v worse_o of_o they_o than_o that_o for_o not_o to_o mention_v daille_n huetius_n and_o petavius_n who_o be_v not_o think_v their_o friend_n dr._n bull_n will_v suffice_v as_o he_o be_v indisputable_o one_o of_o their_o great_a admirer_n and_o if_o we_o may_v say_v it_o their_o pensioned_a apologist_n his_o testimony_n will_v be_v worth_a ten_o thousand_o other_o nice_a other_o peruse_v his_o defence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a he_o say_v of_o origen_n that_o he_o sometime_o speak_v too_o free_o and_o like_o a_o sceptic_a of_o tertullian_n that_o he_o little_o care_v how_o he_o speak_v of_o god_n provide_v he_o do_v but_o contradict_v his_o adversary_n and_o that_o a_o egg_n be_v not_o more_o like_o a_o egg_n than_o the_o expression_n of_o that_o father_n resemble_v the_o extravagant_a conceit_n of_o valentin_n of_o lactantius_n that_o he_o be_v but_o a_o rhetor_n ignorant_a in_o theology_n of_o st._n jerom_n that_o he_o be_v but_o a_o joster_n and_o a_o sophist_n indeed_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o of_o they_o who_o he_o have_v not_o a_o fling_n at_o when_o he_o be_v not_o please_v with_o their_o theology_n their_o arian_n or_o gnostical_a expression_n give_v he_o so_o much_o trouble_v that_o it_o put_v he_o almost_o always_o out_o of_o humour_n what_o may_v we_o not_o say_v of_o their_o poor_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n they_o go_v strange_o to_o work_v on_o it_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v st._n jerom._n mons_fw-la le_fw-fr clerc_n recite_v two_o passage_n of_o he_o which_o will_v come_v in_o very_o proper_o here_o one_o of_o they_o be_v in_o tom._n x._o p._n 492._o where_o that_o father_n say_v in_o apol._n pro_fw-la lib._n cont_n jovin_n p._n 106._o &_o seq_fw-la ed._n gryph_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o write_v in_o order_n to_o dispute_v and_o another_o to_o write_v for_o instruction_n in_o the_o former_a method_n dispute_n be_v very_o extensive_a and_o the_o endeavour_n be_v only_o to_o answer_v the_o adversary_n now_o this_o be_v propose_v then_o that_o we_o speak_v in_o one_o manner_n and_o act_n in_o another_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o latter_a a_o open_a and_o ingenuous_a behaviour_n be_v necessary_a etc._n etc._n origen_n methodius_n eusebius_n and_o apollinarius_n have_v write_v much_o against_o celsus_n and_o porphyry_n observe_v what_o argument_n and_o what_o doubtful_a problem_n they_o make_v use_v of_o to_o overthrow_v the_o write_n compose_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o because_o they_o be_v necessitate_v to_o say_v not_o what_o they_o think_v but_o what_o the_o dispute_n require_v non_fw-la quod_fw-la sentiunt_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la they_o contradict_v the_o gentile_n the_o other_o passage_n may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o xii_o tom._n of_o the_o bib._n vniv_n p._n 146._o and_o be_v take_v out_o of_o st._n jerom_n letter_n to_o nepotian_n p._n 14._o i_o be_v say_v he_o once_o desire_v gregory_n nazianzen_n who_o be_v former_o my_o master_n to_o explain_v to_o i_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o first_o the_o the_o english_a testament_n have_v it_o the_o second_o sabbath_n after_o the_o first_o second-first_a sabbath_n in_o st._n luke_n he_o pleasant_o answer_v i_o i_o will_v inform_v you_o concern_v that_o in_o the_o church_n where_o when_o all_o the_o people_n be_v give_v i_o their_o acclamation_n you_o will_v be_v constrain_v to_o know_v what_o you_o do_v not_o know_v or_o if_o you_o alone_o be_v silent_a you_o will_v be_v account_v a_o fool._n to_o have_v yet_o more_o convince_a proof_n of_o the_o pitiful_a manner_n of_o the_o father_n explain_v the_o scripture_n one_o need_n but_o see_v their_o puerile_a interpretation_n of_o these_o word_n regnavit_fw-la a_o ligno_fw-la deus_fw-la which_o they_o apply_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o on_o many_o other_o text_n whence_o they_o subtle_o draw_v plato_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o train_n of_o flat_a and_o force_a explication_n as_o that_o which_o they_o give_v of_o these_o word_n ex_fw-la utero_fw-la te_fw-la genui_fw-la etc._n etc._n again_o see_v how_o tertullian_n make_v what_o david_n say_v of_o the_o palmtree_n suit_n to_o a_o phoenix_n the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v not_o equivocal_a and_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o tertullian_n be_v deceive_v by_o the_o double_a sense_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n no_o it_o be_v design_o that_o he_o play_v upon_o it_o not_o seek_v so_o much_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o opportunity_n of_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n one_o of_o the_o great_a wonder_n paganism_n ever_o speak_v of_o neither_o be_v the_o father_n so_o ignorant_a in_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o a_o little_a good_a judgement_n will_v have_v show_v they_o the_o natural_a signification_n of_o these_o word_n eructavit_fw-la cor_fw-la meum_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o god_n the_o father_n but_o david_n who_o there_o speak_v however_o they_o be_v willing_a upon_o occasion_n to_o find_v the_o sublimest_n doctrine_n of_o plato_n school_n in_o this_o ordinary_a expression_n of_o scripture_n or_o make_v the_o heathen_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o great_a in_o their_o philosophy_n which_o be_v not_o hide_v in_o those_o scripture-expression_n which_o to_o we_o seem_v plain_a and_o least_o mysterious_a but_o dr._n bull_n find_v admirable_a expedient_n to_o save_v the_o reputation_n of_o the_o father_n he_o distinguish_v between_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o always_o take_v for_o grant_v that_o they_o be_v good_a witness_n of_o the_o faith_n he_o grant_v that_o they_o be_v sometime_o bad_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v respectful_o stab_v they_o with_o a_o dagger_n so_o in_o pag._n 140._o allege_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o passage_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n where_o that_o father_n mistaken_o quote_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n we_o do_v not_o trouble_v ourselves_o say_v he_o with_o irenaeus_n bad_a interpretation_n for_o we_o be_v not_o consult_v that_o father_n as_o a_o interpreter_n always_o happy_a in_o explain_v the_o scripture_n but_o as_o a_o irreproachable_a witness_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o confess_v bad_a interpreter_n may_v be_v good_a witness_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o age._n but_o it_o must_v at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v grant_v i_o that_o the_o faith_n whereof_o they_o testify_v be_v a_o too_o much_o suspect_v faith_n when_o it_o depend_v on_o the_o evidence_n of_o so_o bad_a interpreter_n i_o say_v bad_a for_o it_o be_v not_o only_o one_o or_o two_o passage_n mistake_v by_o these_o doctor_n which_o we_o be_v speak_v of_o but_o
deny_v when_o it_o be_v only_o their_o irresistible_a grace_n that_o be_v reject_v which_o they_o have_v be_v please_v to_o conceit_n as_o such_o sandius_n who_o maintain_v a_o word_n bring_v forth_o and_o stand_v for_o the_o hypostasis_n yet_o own_v nucl_n hist_o eccl._n lib._n 1._o that_o marcellus_n photinus_n sabellius_n paul_n of_o samosata_n and_o even_o ebion_n who_o believe_v only_o a_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o father_n hold_v notwithstanding_o that_o in_o that_o hypostasis_fw-la alone_o there_o be_v two_o energy_n or_o divine_a operation_n to_o wit_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o that_o by_o these_o two_o operation_n god_n create_v the_o world_n and_o manifest_v himself_o in_o j._n c._n petavius_n acknowledge_v the_o same_o de_n trinit_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 13._o as_o to_o paul_n of_o samosata_n and_o marcellus_n dr._n pearson_n agree_v with_o he_o that_o the_o last_o vind._n ignat._n par._n 2._o c._n 3._o believe_v a_o existent_a word_n in_o the_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o father_n and_o which_o come_v forth_o thence_o as_o a_o single_a operation_n to_o create_v the_o universe_n dr._n bull_n judic_n eccles_n etc._n etc._n p._n 67._o recount_v the_o opinion_n of_o paul_n of_o samosata_n attribute_n to_o he_o constant_o that_o he_o believe_v a_o efficacious_a word_n descend_v from_o heaven_n on_o j._n c._n and_o by_o the_o word_n say_v he_o paul_n do_v not_o intend_v that_o hypostasis_fw-la which_o we_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o a_o power_n and_o a_o divine_a virtue_n which_o form_v he_o in_o the_o virgin_n and_o which_o be_v close_o unite_v to_o he_o to_o work_v the_o miracle_n he_o do_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v that_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o beryllus_n those_o expression_n of_o eusebius_n that_o have_v give_v so_o much_o trouble_v to_o the_o learned_a be_v not_o difficult_a to_o be_v understand_v provide_v you_o supply_v they_o with_o some_o particle_n and_o add_v a_o word_n or_o two_o as_o you_o must_v sometime_o in_o all_o other_o author_n in_o my_o opinion_n eusebius_n intend_v nothing_o else_o lib._n 6._o c._n 33._o but_o that_o this_o bishop_n maintain_v that_o the_o man_n j._n c._n do_v not_o pre-exist_a in_o another_o essence_n or_o another_o nature_n that_o be_v proper_a to_o he_o before_o he_o live_v among_o man_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o deity_n which_o dwell_v since_o he_o live_v among_o man_n be_v not_o a_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o his_o own_o but_o the_o divinity_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v a_o right_a notion_n the_o word_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o divine_a power_n distinct_a from_o the_o son_n and_o a_o heavenly_a wisdom_n descend_v on_o j._n c._n beryilus_n paul_n and_o marcellus_n have_v it_o perhaps_o from_o ignatius_n who_o call_v j._n c._n epist_n ad_fw-la magnes_fw-la the_o eternal_a word_n that_o come_v not_o forth_o out_o of_o silence_n i._n e._n that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o word_n bring_v forth_o and_o be_v otten_v with_o its_o proper_a hypostasis_fw-la but_o the_o operation_n and_o the_o essential_a virtue_n of_o god_n manifest_v himself_o outward_o for_o i_o frank_o agree_v that_o this_o passage_n of_o ignatius_n which_o have_v give_v so_o much_o trouble_v to_o the_o abettor_n of_o his_o epistle_n be_v not_o intend_v against_o valentine_n but_o i_o say_v it_z attack_n those_o platonic_a doctor_n who_o assert_v a_o generation_n of_o the_o word_n a_o little_a before_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n and_o who_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v bring_v forth_o and_o consequent_o proceed_v out_o of_o silence_n this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o tertullian_n and_o many_o of_o the_o father_n who_o precede_v he_o that_o the_o word_n that_o be_v bring_v forth_o which_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o only_a that_o be_v beget_v and_o the_o only_a one_o that_o may_v be_v call_v the_o son_n do_v come_v forth_o in_o time_n of_o another_o mute_a word_n which_o they_o call_v reason_n or_o wisdom_n eternal_a tertullian_n teach_v we_o positive_o adv_n prax._n that_o before_o the_o word_n that_o be_v bring_v forth_o come_v out_o of_o the_o wisdom_n or_o the_o divine_a reason_n god_n have_v it_o in_o himself_o in_o his_o thought_n as_o a_o silent_a word_n habebat_fw-la intra_fw-la semetipsum_fw-la tacitè_fw-fr cogitando_fw-la you_o can_v express_v more_o clear_o that_o the_o word_n bring_v forth_o come_v out_o of_o silence_n this_o opinion_n no_o doubt_n begin_v to_o glide_v in_o at_o the_o time_n of_o ignatius_n who_o laugh_v at_o it_o and_o refute_v it_o reject_v this_o word_n bring_v forth_o and_o proceed_v out_o of_o silence_n which_o receive_v its_o hypostasis_fw-la a_o little_a before_o the_o creation_n as_o be_v a_o word_n mere_o flatonick_a and_o he_o admit_v no_o other_o word_n to_o be_v real_a but_o that_o essential_a virtue_n which_o be_v eternal_o in_o god_n which_o be_v god_n himself_o which_o create_v the_o world_n and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v incorporate_v in_o j._n c._n and_o this_o ignatius_n way_n of_o speak_v that_o j._n c._n be_v the_o eternal_a word_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o word_n of_o st._n john_n that_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o same_o virtue_n which_o create_v the_o world_n be_v become_v the_o proper_a virtue_n of_o j._n c._n in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o you_o may_v say_v right_o that_o j._n c._n make_v the_o age_n by_o his_o power_n and_o consequent_o by_o himself_o for_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o my_o power_n be_v do_v by_o myself_o when_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o all_o thing_n ●ere_z make_v by_o j._n c._n or_o by_o the_o son_n their_o meaning_n be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o they_o be_v make_v by_o the_o immense_a power_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v in_o j.c._n he_o become_v that_o power_n that_o spirit_n that_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n because_o all_o the_o miracle_n effect_v by_o that_o power_n be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v by_o j._n c._n in_o who_o it_o reside_v in_o this_o sense_n simon_n magus_n call_v himself_o the_o great_a power_n of_o god_n and_o boast_v that_o he_o have_v make_v the_o age_n not_o that_o he_o believe_v himself_o as_o the_o ancient_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a hypostasis_fw-la sometime_o the_o father_n sometime_o the_o son_n and_o sometime_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o be_v not_o so_o extravagant_a but_o only_o ap_v j._n c_o design_v to_o say_v that_o the_o divine_a power_n which_o actuate_v he_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n the_o same_o power_n that_o create_v the_o world_n j._n c._n be_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n call_v the_o power_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 1.24_o we_o may_v enforce_v the_o explication_n we_o have_v give_v of_o ignatius_n his_o word_n by_o the_o manner_n how_o irenaeus_n dispute_v against_o the_o valentinian_o lib._n 2._o c._n 47._o &_o seq_fw-la it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o in_o regard_n to_o man_n he_o be_v sometime_o silent_a sometime_o speak_v sometime_o he_o take_v his_o rest_n and_o sometime_o act_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o god_n who_o be_v all_o understanding_n all_o reason_n all_o spirit_n be_v not_o liable_a to_o such_o like_a change_n mean_v that_o god_n be_v always_o a_o reason_n a_o internal_a word_n but_o never_o a_o word_n bring_v faith_n as_o he_o explain_v himself_o afterward_o say_v that_o god_n be_v all_o reason_n think_v in_o he_o be_v speak_v and_o speak_v nothing_o else_o but_o think_v for_o his_o thought_n be_v his_o speech_n and_o his_o speech_n be_v his_o understanding_n and_o this_o understanding_n which_o comprehend_v all_o thing_n be_v the_o father_n himself_o further_o to_o make_v we_o the_o better_a comprehend_v that_o he_o speak_v thus_o against_o the_o word_n bring_v forth_o or_o beget_v he_o accost_v the_o valentinian_o with_o this_o smart_a raillery_n the_o valentinian_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o bring_v forth_o and_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n as_o if_o they_o have_v assist_v the_o father_n at_o his_o birth_n i_o shall_v leave_v you_o to_o consider_v whether_o this_o raillery_n spare_v our_o scholastics_n he_o that_o will_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n about_o it_o needs_o only_o make_v a_o parallel_n of_o their_o system_fw-la concern_v the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n with_o that_o of_o the_o valentinian_o and_o he_o may_v soon_o see_v whether_o those_o heretic_n only_o be_v ridiculous_a herein_o chap._n xii_o plato_n speak_v but_o enigmatical_o his_o word_n be_v not_o that_o of_o st._n john_n several_a system_n of_o the_o platonist_n explain_v i_o can_v produce_v many_o more_o platonist_n but_o to_o be_v brief_a i_o come_v now_o to_o plato_n himself_o see_v then_o what_o clement_n of_o alexandria_n say_v of_o he_o strom._n lib._n 5._o p._n 592._o of_o the_o paris_n edition_n when_o plato_n say_v that_o it_o
ingenuous_o in_o joan._n 1.1_o they_o only_o mean_v that_o the_o word_n be_v not_o create_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o all_o thing_n when_o god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o creature_n or_o that_o of_o the_o other_o generate_v spirit_n because_o it_o have_v a_o be_v then_o already_o the_o father_n have_v beget_v it_o before_o by_o a_o immediate_a generation_n for_o this_o reason_n the_o author_n of_o the_o recognition_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 11._o deny_v formal_o that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v be_v call_v son_n because_o there_o be_v say_v he_o but_o one_o ungenerate_v and_o but_o one_o generate_v it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v a_o son_n have_v be_v make_v by_o another_o who_o be_v likewise_o make_v eusebius_n deliver_v this_o doctrine_n as_o a_o chapter_n a_o such_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o that_o chapter_n tradition_n of_o the_o church_n de_n eccles_n theol._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6._o the_o spirit_n the_o paraclet_n say_v he_o be_v neither_o god_n nor_o son_n because_o he_o take_v not_o his_o origin_n from_o the_o father_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o son_n do_v be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v by_o the_o son_n for_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v all_o thing_n say_v the_o evangelist_n consequent_o then_o the_o holy_a spirit_n also_o origen_n doctrine_n be_v the_o source_n of_o all_o this_o who_o maintain_v in_o his_o 1_o tom._n upon_o st._n john_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v a_o creature_n of_o the_o son_n rely_v with_o eusebius_n upon_o this_o expression_n that_o all_o 〈◊〉_d not_o except_v the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v make_v by_o the_o son_n this_o theology_n of_o the_o ancient_n ●●●hing_v the_o immediate_a generation_n of_o the_o word_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o world_n creation_n be_v follow_v by_o many_o other_o doctor_n even_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a marius_n victorinus_n be_v of_o this_o number_n who_o will_v have_v it_o in_o his_o first_o book_n that_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o word_n be_v only_o a_o effusion_n and_o manifestation_n of_o that_o power_n which_o create_v the_o world_n and_o which_o be_v hide_v in_o god_n before_o you_o may_v join_v zeno_n of_o verona_n with_o he_o de_fw-la aeterna_fw-la filii_fw-la generatione_n serm._n 3_o who_o moreover_o explain_v this_o generation_n by_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v then_o that_o the_o word_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o abyss_n of_o the_o divine_a understanding_n in_o profundo_fw-la sacrae_fw-la mentis_fw-la serm._n 1_o be_v thrust_v forth_o and_o beget_v will_v valentine_n have_v express_v himself_o otherwise_o about_o his_o word_n which_o come_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o understanding_n than_o this_o man_n do_v of_o his_o come_v out_o of_o the_o deep_a and_o silence_n but_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o forget_v rupert_n who_o unfold_v admirable_o this_o philosophic_a cabala_n say_v that_o the_o father_n actual_o beget_v the_o word_n which_o contain_v potential_o all_o thing_n when_o he_o create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n yes_o he_o go_v on_o the_o father_n thrust_v forth_o this_o good_a word_n out_o of_o his_o heart_n and_o before_o the_o morningstar_n beget_v he_o out_o of_o his_o bosom_n viz._n out_o of_o the_o bottom_n of_o his_o substance_n when_o he_o say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o like_a to_o origen_n expression_n that_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o light_n be_v the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n mr._n huel_n excuse_v origen_n allege_v that_o he_o speak_v allegorical_o we_o do_v not_o doubt_v it_o all_o this_o theology_n be_v allegoric_a the_o word_n or_o command_n which_o god_n utter_v to_o the_o creature_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o improper_o so_o and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o my_o thought_n or_o my_o speech_n be_v the_o son_n of_o my_o understanding_n which_o both_o conceive_v and_o bring_v they_o forth_o this_o be_v too_o evident_a and_o for_o this_o cause_n dr._n ball_n have_v reason_n to_o retrench_v out_o of_o his_o quotation_n desen_n fidei_fw-la nic._n p._n 395._o these_o last_o word_n of_o rupert_n passage_n that_o the_o father_n beget_v the_o son_n when_o he_o ●●id_v let_v there_o be_v light_n but_o lactartius_n go_v beyond_o all_o these_o doctor_n i_o quote_v for_o he_o allow_v not_o to_o the_o word_n so_o much_o as_o the_o advantage_n of_o a_o immediate_a generation_n above_o the_o other_o generate_v spirit_n he_o find_v no_o difference_n between_o they_o but_o only_o in_o the_o different_a manner_n of_o their_o prolation_n and_o in_o the_o different_a design_n god_n have_v in_o the_o beget_n of_o they_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v we_o say_v he_o lib._n 4._o c._n 8._o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n even_o as_o also_o the_o other_o angel_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o the_o word_n be_v a_o spirit_n which_o be_v bring_v forth_o with_o a_o significative_a voice_n but_o because_o the_o spirit_n breath_n and_o speech_n be_v thrust_v forth_o by_o different_a organ_n the_o spirit_n proceed_v out_o of_o the_o nostril_n and_o the_o speech_n out_o of_o the_o mouth_n consequent_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o this_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o angel_n caeteros_fw-la angelos_n these_o be_v come_v forth_o out_o of_o god_n as_o silent_a and_o mute_a spirit_n because_o they_o be_v not_o create_v to_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n but_o only_o for_o the_o execute_n of_o his_o order_n but_o the_o son_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v a_o spirit_n yet_o he_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n with_o a_o sound_n and_o a_o voice_n like_v unto_o speech_n because_o god_n be_v to_o make_v use_n of_o his_o voice_n to_o instruct_v the_o people_n etc._n etc._n you_o see_v manifest_o how_o he_o confound_v the_o angel_n who_o be_v call_v the_o word_n with_o the_o other_o angel_n that_o he_o make_v they_o all_o to_o proceed_v out_o of_o god_n equal_o by_o a_o immediate_a prolation_n and_o that_o the_o only_a difference_n he_o make_v here_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o common_a angel_n proceed_v out_o of_o the_o nostril_n of_o god_n as_o mute_a spirit_n design_v only_o to_o execute_v his_o order_n by_o deed_n whereas_o this_o chief_a angel_n who_o he_o call_v the_o son_n do_v proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n as_o a_o vocal_a and_o sound_a speech_n design_v to_o deliver_v his_o oracle_n and_o to_o reveal_v his_o will._n last_o origen_n or_o some_o body_n else_o under_o his_o name_n go_v beyond_o even_a lactantius_n himself_o in_o that_o he_o confound_v the_o generation_n of_o the_o word_n with_o that_o of_o common_a creature_n homil._n 2._o in_o diversos_fw-la for_o though_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n he_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n be_v bear_v before_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o yet_o he_o advance_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o these_o word_n all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o signify_v only_o that_o at_o his_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o father_n all_o thing_n be_v likewise_o bear_v together_o with_o he_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o word-god_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o though_o he_o say_v that_o the_o son_n be_v of_o a_o different_a substance_n from_o the_o creature_n that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o beginning_n before_o time_n be_v he_o seem_v to_o destroy_v all_o this_o by_o add_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o son_n substance_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n intend_v so_o much_o when_o he_o say_v that_o his_o father_n be_v great_a than_o he_o which_o assert_n evident_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o son_n as_o also_o when_o he_o go_v on_o to_o exist_v before_o time_n be_v to_o exist_v not_o in_o time_n but_o with_o time_n his_o conclusion_n will_v tell_v we_o his_o mean_v we_o ought_v then_o say_v he_o to_o believe_v three_o thing_n the_o father_n bring_v forth_o the_o son_n beget_v and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v by_o the_o word_n the_o father_n speak_v the_o word_n be_v beget_v and_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v conformable_o to_o what_o he_o be_v say_v viz._n that_o the_o father_n bring_v forth_o the_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v beget_v his_o wisdom_n all_o thing_n be_v then_o make_v it_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o sound_v the_o depth_n of_o this_o philosophy_n the_o word_n be_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n because_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a power_n of_o the_o father_n but_o it_o be_v less_o than_o
the_o father_n because_o it_o be_v only_o a_o breath_n a_o emanation_n and_o a_o ray._n the_o word_n be_v before_o all_o thing_n because_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v command_v before_o the_o creature_n obey_v but_o all_o thing_n be_v bear_v together_o with_o it_o because_o god_n create_v the_o world_n by_o bring_v forth_o and_o beget_v the_o word_n we_o shall_v open_v our_o eye_n and_o see_v the_o cabala_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n through_o all_o these_o mysterious_a generation_n so_o as_o clement_n of_o alexandria_n expound_v it_o in_o brief_a strom._n lib._n 5._o the_o word_n say_v he_o come_v out_o of_o god_n do_v cause_v the_o creation_n that_o be_v to_o speak_v plain_o god_n create_v the_o world_n by_o one_o single_a word_n and_o see_v this_o great_a maker_n make_v no_o use_n of_o any_o other_o instrument_n hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v no_o doubt_n that_o this_o word_n of_o his_o be_v call_v his_o minister_n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o immediate_a generation_n as_o the_o philosopher_n understand_v by_o wisdom_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nothing_o else_o but_o the_o universal_a idea_n of_o the_o world_n which_o they_o call_v the_o first-born_a son_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v the_o plan_n of_o this_o sensible_a world_n so_o the_o father_n be_v enure_v to_o this_o way_n of_o philosophize_v conceive_v also_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o be_v the_o first_o idea_n in_o the_o spiritual_a world_n and_o a_o universal_a one_o and_o to_o be_v the_o source_n and_o seed_n of_o all_o the_o other_o idea_n in_o this_o sense_n tertullian_n against_o hermogenes_n make_v wisdom_n to_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o word_n mean_v that_o this_o wisdom_n do_v thrust_v the_o word_n itself_o out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n and_o together_o all_o the_o various_a form_n of_o exi_a thing_n which_o be_v a_o mere_a allegory_n the_o meaning_n of_o which_o be_v that_o the_o word_n bring_v forth_o and_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o plan_n and_o idea_n of_o the_o internal_a word_n which_o be_v the_o immediate_a production_n of_o the_o divine_a understanding_n hence_o it_o come_v that_o justin_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n distinguish_v the_o universal_a reason_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o primitive_a seed_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n from_o reason_n which_o be_v in_o every_o man_n and_o which_o be_v only_o a_o portion_n and_o emanation_n of_o the_o divine_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o philosopher_n consider_v these_o seed_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o in_o god_n and_o then_o they_o differ_v not_o from_o platonic_a idea_n which_o be_v not_o only_o the_o form_n of_o creature_n trace_v in_o the_o divine_a understanding_n but_o also_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o the_o origin_n of_o all_o production_n marcus_n antoninus_n make_v use_v of_o this_o word_n in_o that_o sense_n lib._n 4._o §_o 10._o 2._o they_o consider_v these_o seed_n in_o thing_n create_v design_v to_o denote_v by_o they_o their_o essence_n and_o form_n but_o especial_o that_o of_o man_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o portion_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n this_o last_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o justin_n but_o they_o distinguish_v among_o these_o primitive_a seed_n the_o idea_n of_o the_o messiah_n as_o a_o immediate_a one_o and_o the_o first_o in_o the_o divine_a understanding_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o which_o god_n trace_v and_o form_v all_o the_o rest_n hence_o arise_v that_o common_a opinion_n that_o god_n create_v the_o world_n for_o the_o messiah_n this_o opinion_n whether_o true_a or_o false_a give_v occasion_n to_o mahomet_n to_o apply_v to_o himself_o this_o prerogative_n of_o the_o messiah_n that_o god_n will_v not_o have_v create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o the_o love_n he_o bear_v he_o apud_fw-la barthol_n edessen_v in_o confut_o agaren_n furthermore_o if_o any_o will_v demand_v how_o it_o happen_v that_o so_o many_o of_o the_o disciple_n of_o plato_n both_o christian_n and_o pagan_n do_v so_o gross_o follow_v the_o letter_n of_o his_o three_o principle_n make_v three_o hypostasis_n of_o they_o and_o change_v his_o cosmogony_n into_o a_o mere_a theogony_n i_o answer_v as_o mons_fw-la le_fw-fr clerc_n do_v concern_v idolatry_n on_o exod._n 20.4_o it_o proceed_v say_v he_o from_o the_o craft_n of_o priest_n who_o in_o order_n to_o make_v religion_n more_o august_n talk_v but_o very_o obscure_o of_o its_o mystery_n whatever_o be_v clear_a be_v not_o convenient_a for_o they_o but_o every_o thing_n must_v be_v conceal_v under_o symbol_n and_o riddle_n and_o see_v that_o symbolical_a religion_n be_v pure_o arbitrary_a it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o those_o symbol_n be_v efface_v out_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n nothing_o remain_v for_o the_o vulgar_a except_o what_o make_v a_o impression_n upon_o their_o sense_n so_o that_o they_o believe_v at_o last_o that_o the_o deity_n itself_o dwell_v under_o those_o figure_n at_o first_o they_o design_v to_o represent_v under_o the_o symbolical_a figure_n of_o a_o ox_n only_o a_o king_n devote_v to_o husbandry_n but_o at_o last_o they_o come_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n itself_o of_o that_o king_n deify_v do_v inhabit_v that_o ox._n no_o doubt_n but_o the_o philosopher_n themselves_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o people_n the_o shrewd_a of_o they_o have_v find_v the_o truth_n have_v some_o reason_n to_o cover_v it_o under_o fiction_n thereby_o to_o disguise_v it_o to_o other_o plato_n have_v his_o as_o we_o have_v see_v already_o he_o have_v find_v the_o father_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o most_o good_a wise_a and_o powerful_a god_n and_o have_v find_v it_o dangerous_a to_o speak_v of_o he_o according_a to_o truth_n he_o make_v three_o hypostasis_n and_o three_o god_n of_o the_o three_o attribute_n which_o he_o conceive_v be_v in_o the_o creator_n and_o speak_v of_o they_o majestical_o under_o the_o name_n of_o good_a reason_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n or_o under_o some_o other_o fiction_n that_o vary_v the_o term_n yet_o without_o alter_v the_o secret_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o those_o symbol_n this_o symbolic_a theology_n be_v arbitrary_a or_o rather_o a_o mere_a fiction_n the_o sense_n ●●●tained_v under_o that_o shell_n dwindle_v away_o by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o letter_n remain_v alone_o they_o philosophize_v only_o on_o the_o indeterminate_a system_n of_o three_o hypostasis_n viz._n of_o a_o first_o second_o and_z third_z god_n the_o christian_n especial_o be_v not_o want_v to_o make_v a_o noise_n about_o this_o mystery_n to_o render_v their_o religion_n the_o more_o pompous_a but_o after_o all_o it_o be_v the_o gross_a platonism_n that_o turn_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n into_o a_o mere_a pag_n 〈…〉_o turn_v the_o best_a thing_n degenerate_a but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n chap_n xv._o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o moralist_n among_o the_o jew_n concern_v the_o wisdom_n or_o the_o word_n st._n john_n have_v imitate_v they_o i_o know_v it_o be_v pretend_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o platonic_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v too_o much_o weakness_n in_o what_o be_v allege_v from_o the_o 8_o of_o proverb_n and_o some_o other_o place_n in_o their_o moral_a book_n i_o be_o amaze_v to_o think_v that_o any_o body_n shall_v not_o see_v this_o chapter_n to_o be_v figurative_a and_o that_o solomon_n speak_v there_o of_o wisdom_n in_o general_n such_o as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n or_o as_o he_o have_v communicate_v it_o to_o man_n but_o especial_o of_o that_o which_o shine_v forth_o and_o be_v to_o be_v admire_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o some_o of_o the_o orthodox_n understand_v it_o in_o st._n jerom_n time_n hieron_n in_o cap._n 2._o ephes_n dr._n patrick_n now_o bishop_n of_o ely_n do_v free_o own_o in_o his_o paraphrase_n on_o this_o chapter_n that_o solomon_n speak_v here_o of_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o wise_a law_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o israelite_n arg._n ver_fw-la 21_o 22_o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v express_v in_o such_o magnificent_a language_n that_o though_o solomon_n i_o suppose_v think_v of_o nothing_o but_o the_o wise_a direction_n god_n have_v give_v they_o in_o his_o word_n reveal_v to_o they_o by_o his_o servant_n moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n yet_o the_o ancient_a christian_n think_v his_o word_n may_v be_v better_o apply_v to_o the_o wisdom_n reveal_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o the_o eternal_a word_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n can_v he_o have_v express_v himself_o more_o clear_o to_o give_v
read_v the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o the_o jehova_n and_o then_o the_o expression_n will_v become_v so_o natural_a as_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v mysterious_a chap._n xvi_o where_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v that_o the_o chaldee_n paraphra_v mean_v by_o the_o word_n nothing_o else_o but_o a_o angel_n beside_o the_o moralist_n jew_n the_o chaldee_n paraphrast_n be_v also_o quote_v as_o if_o they_o have_v know_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o plato_n the_o great_a part_n of_o these_o paraphrase_n be_v stuff_v with_o fable_n and_o impiety_n not_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v of_o a_o late_a date_n and_o unknown_a to_o the_o ancient_n who_o have_v any_o skill_n in_o the_o oriental_a tongue_n this_o be_v own_a by_o some_o of_o the_o modern_a learned_a as_o ribera_n isaac_n vossius_fw-la father_n simon_n and_o other_o however_o a_o able_a man_n have_v already_o demonstrate_v with_o the_o utmost_a evidence_n gul._n vorstius_n discept_v de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la that_o these_o paraphrast_n never_o give_v the_o name_n of_o the_o word_n to_o the_o messiah_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o he_o express_o but_o always_o call_v he_o the_o king_n messiah_n and_o the_o messiah_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o the_o messiah_n of_o israel_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o st._n john_n can_v not_o follow_v a_o paraphrase_n than_o not_o extant_a and_o which_o never_o give_v the_o title_n of_o the_o word_n to_o the_o messiah_n of_o israel_n but_o lest_o you_o shall_v reply_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o apostle_n to_o have_v follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o jew_n of_o that_o time_n you_o need_v but_o consider_v the_o word_n of_o trypho_n to_o justin_n to_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o contrary_n we_o wait_v say_v he_o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o nation_n for_o a_o christ_n a_o man_n bear_v of_o men._n it_o be_v true_a that_o this_o expression_n the_o word_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o all_o these_o paraphrase_n but_o it_o be_v always_o attribute_v to_o god_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n with_o the_o latin_a numen_fw-la jovis_n numen_fw-la junonis_fw-la for_o jupiter_n and_o juno_n themselves_o somewhat_o like_o our_o give_v a_o king_n the_o title_n of_o his_o majesty_n as_o his_o majesty_n have_v resolve_v order_v his_o majesty_n say_v or_o do_v instead_o of_o the_o king_n have_v resolve_v order_v have_v say_v or_o do_v in_o the_o like_a manner_n when_o these_o paraphrast_n say_v the_o word_n do_v command_v or_o declare_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o god_n do_v command_v or_o declare_v it_o i_o do_v not_o say_v these_o be_v absolute_o the_o same_o expression_n however_o these_o example_n show_v that_o there_o be_v in_o all_o tongue_n some_o particular_a modes_n of_o speak_v from_o the_o which_o no_o such_o consequence_n be_v to_o be_v draw_v as_o if_o every_o strange_a word_n contain_v a_o great_a mystery_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o this_o mountain_n bring_v forth_o but_o a_o mouse_n will_v you_o have_v i_o speak_v plain_o these_o paraphrast_n by_o the_o word_n design_v only_o the_o angel_n who_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o who_o speak_v in_o his_o stead_n this_o term_n be_v particular_o appropriate_v to_o messenger_n and_o interpreter_n we_o likewise_o see_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n do_v thus_o call_v chap._n 18._o 15._o the_o destroy_a angel_n send_v to_o kill_v the_o first-born_a of_o egypt_n because_o he_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o command_n of_o god_n therein_o and_o the_o execution_n of_o it_o thy_o almighty_a word_n say_v he_o leap_v down_o from_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n this_o word_n say_v maldonat_a in_o joan._n 1.1_o can_v at_o all_o be_v j._n c._n of_o who_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o executioner_n thus_o those_o of_o lystra_n call_v st._n paul_n mercury_n or_o the_o interpreter_n of_o barnabas_n who_o they_o look_v upon_o as_o their_o jupiter_n and_o this_o because_o he_o paul_n be_v the_o chief_a speaker_n viz._n be_v the_o word_n of_o barnabas_n hermes_n which_o be_v the_o name_n the_o greek_n give_v to_o mercury_n signify_v a_o interpreter_n and_o they_o explain_v it_o often_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o word_n hermes_n say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o life_n of_o homer_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phurnutus_n call_v he_o a_o angel_n or_o messenger_n heraclides_fw-la ponticus_n give_v the_o name_n of_o angel_n to_o iris_n and_o the_o name_n of_o word_n to_o mercury_n sometime_o he_o join_v the_o term_n word_n with_o that_o of_o a_o interpreter_n calling_z mercury_n the_o word_n interpreter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o also_o observe_v that_o iris_n be_v thus_o call_v because_o she_o bring_v word_n as_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o hermes_n be_v call_v so_o because_o he_o be_v the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o god_n as_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d at_o last_o he_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o wing_n be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o because_o say_v he_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o swift_a as_o speech_n which_o make_v homer_n say_v that_o word_n have_v wing_n hence_o it_o come_v no_o doubt_n that_o we_o give_v wing_n to_o angel_n as_o well_o as_o to_o mercury_n because_o they_o be_v the_o messenger_n and_o the_o interpreter_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d see_v then_o the_o heathen_n talk_v thus_o of_o the_o messenger_n of_o their_o god_n and_o call_v they_o interpreter_n and_o word_n i_o can_v discern_v any_o great_a mystery_n in_o the_o jewish_a paraphrast_n nor_o why_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v the_o same_o name_n to_o angel_n or_o other_o messenger_n that_o speak_v to_o they_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o god_n maldonat_fw-la in_o joan._n 1.1_o do_v real_o observe_v well_o that_o the_o paraphrast_n make_v use_v of_o this_o term_n when_o god_n be_v treat_v of_o as_o converse_v with_o and_o speak_v to_o we_o or_o come_v to_o aid_n and_o succour_v we_o this_o can_v be_v understand_v but_o of_o a_o divine_a manifestation_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o a_o angel_n neither_o will_v it_o have_v be_v surprise_v if_o what_o they_o say_v of_o the_o angel_n they_o have_v say_v also_o of_o the_o messiah_n i_o mean_v in_o respect_n to_o his_o commission_n but_o not_o at_o all_o in_o relation_n to_o a_o inviable_a nature_n and_o then_o if_o you_o will_v have_v it_o that_o st._n john_n do_v imitate_v the_o jew_n as_o to_o the_o use_n of_o this_o term_n i_o shall_v agree_v with_o you_o provide_v it_o be_v in_o the_o sense_n we_o have_v give_v which_o be_v both_o plain_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v observe_v already_o p._n 17_o 18._o that_o the_o paraphrast_n we_o speak_v of_o do_v not_o make_v use_n of_o this_o term_n word_n but_o only_o in_o those_o place_n where_o the_o hebrew_n speak_v of_o the_o action_n and_o affection_n of_o god_n express_v they_o by_o the_o term_n of_o face_n eye_n foot_n hand_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v corporeal_a part_n and_o belong_v only_o to_o man._n we_o observe_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o these_o way_n of_o speak_v which_o the_o hebrew_n text_n make_v use_v of_o be_v ground_v upon_o this_o that_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n who_o appear_v in_o god_n name_n and_o have_v his_o authority_n do_v most_o common_o appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man._n the_o consequence_n i_o will_v draw_v from_o these_o two_o remark_n be_v evident_a and_o for_o this_o reason_n the_o paraphrast_n use_v this_o term_n word_n only_o to_o denote_v the_o divine_a manifestation_n by_o angel_n under_o sensible_a representation_n but_o particular_o those_o of_o a_o human_a voice_n and_o shape_n their_o testimony_n then_o be_v so_o far_o from_o favour_v the_o idea_n of_o a_o metaphysical_a word_n that_o it_o serve_v on_o the_o contrary_a to_o confirm_v our_o hypothesis_n which_o be_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n a_o sensible_a manifestation_n of_o god_n either_o in_o a_o bright_a cloud_n or_o by_o a_o heavenly_a voice_n or_o by_o a_o human_a shape_n it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o controvertist_n object_n to_o we_o that_o passage_n of_o the_o paraphrase_n upon_o the_o psalm_n which_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o viz._n that_o upon_o psalm_n 110._o the_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o word_n i_o know_v not_o where_o they_o have_v it_o for_o in_o the_o original_a it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o latin_a interpreter_n translate_v it_o very_o well_o in_o verbo_fw-la svo_fw-la by_o or_o in_o his_o word_n which_o be_v a_o mere_a hebraism_n instead_o of_o god_n have_v say_v the_o jew_n speak_v on_o this_o wise_a say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o or_o
and_o turn_v the_o anagogick_n into_o a_o historical_a and_o literal_a sense_n let_v we_o begin_v with_o barnabas_n the_o sacred_a writer_n have_v say_v that_o j._n c._n be_v the_o rock_n of_o the_o desert_n the_o passover_n propitiation_n etc._n etc._n in_o like_a manner_n barnabas_n accustom_a to_o the_o method_n his_o nation_n follow_v ever_o since_o the_o captivity_n accommodate_n to_o j._n c._n many_o passage_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o have_v their_o mystic_a and_o spiritual_a truth_n in_o he_o according_a to_o this_o way_n of_o interpret_n the_o rock_n be_v j._n c._n intelligible_o david_n be_v j._n c._n anagogical_o the_o ancient_n tempt_v j._n c._n because_o they_o tempt_v moses_n or_o the_o angel_n who_o be_v the_o type_n of_o the_o messiah_n so_o that_o it_o may_v safe_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o intelligible_a moses_n a_o intelligible_a david_n or_o rock_n and_o consequent_o a_o intelligible_a word_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o hesychius_n call_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o eucharist_n intelligible_a blood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o mystical_a blood_n which_o be_v conceive_v such_o only_a by_o our_o thought_n and_o mind_n not_o be_v real_o so_o and_o in_o the_o very_a letter_n for_o who_o can_v so_o much_o as_o doubt_v that_o the_o word_n be_v j._n c._n or_o that_o j._n c._n be_v the_o word_n by_o the_o which_o god_n create_v the_o world_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o he_o be_v the_o passover_n or_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o desert_n that_o be_v to_o say_v there_o be_v find_v in_o he_o mystical_o that_o divine_a efficacy_n or_o that_o powerful_a word_n which_o speak_v which_o command_v and_o the_o creature_n immediate_o obey_v its_o order_n god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a j._n c._n say_v let_v this_o blind_a man_n recover_v his_o sight_n and_o there_o be_v light_a the_o blind_a man_n see_v it●_n he_o perform_v his_o miracle_n by_o a_o word_n only_o can_v you_o accommodate_v better_o the_o old_a creation_n to_o the_o new_a and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o the_o same_o word_n which_o create_v the_o world_n act_v in_o the_o flesh_n of_o j._n c._n the_o which_o it_o not_o only_o inhabit_v have_v descend_v on_o it_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n but_o into_o which_o it_o have_v likewise_o insinuate_v itself_o as_o the_o principle_n of_o his_o conception_n and_o birth_n but_o that_o you_o may_v not_o believe_v i_o upon_o my_o bare_a word_n i_o will_v prove_v my_o hypothesis_n by_o barnabas_n his_o own_o epistle_n the_o most_o plausible_a argument_n be_v draw_v from_o chap._n 4._o where_o the_o greek_a be_v want_v christ_n say_v this_o father_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o world_n to_o who_o god_n say_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n let_v we_o make_v man_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o appear_v by_o chap._n 5._o whereof_o we_o have_v the_o original_a that_o barnabas_n take_v these_o word_n in_o a_o allegoric_a and_o spiritual_a sense_n read_v alone_o take_v away_o the_o difficulty_n god_n as_o he_o say_v have_v renew_v we_o by_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n have_v make_v we_o as_o it_o be_v child_n and_o restore_v to_o we_o a_o form_n total_o spiritual_a for_o the_o scripture_n speak_v thus_o of_o we_o introduce_v god_n as_o it_o be_v speak_v to_o his_o son_n let_v we_o make_v man_n according_a to_o our_o image_n and_o the_o lord_n behold_v our_o new_a nature_n have_v say_v to_o we_o increase_n etc._n etc._n behold_v now_o how_o he_o have_v speak_v to_o his_o son_n i_o will_v once_o more_o show_v you_o how_o god_n have_v give_v you_o a_o new_a figure_n in_o these_o last_o time_n the_o lord_n say_v behold_v i_o make_v all_o thing_n new_a it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o this_o expression_n let_v we_o make_v man_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o new_a creation_n to_o the_o second_o form_n that_o god_n give_v we_o and_o that_o when_o god_n have_v thus_o reform_v we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n he_o have_v as_o it_o be_v say_v to_o his_o son_n let_v we_o make_v man._n you_o need_v not_o doubt_v then_o that_o the_o same_o allegoric_a sense_n be_v to_o be_v look_v for_o in_o chap._n 4._o which_o without_o any_o ground_n be_v take_v literal_o whatever_o god_n say_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n either_o speak_n to_o the_o angel_n or_o consult_v himself_o may_v assure_o be_v say_v in_o a_o mystical_a sense_n to_o have_v be_v speak_v to_o his_o son_n by_o who_o mean_n he_o have_v make_v a_o new_a man._n as_o if_o barnabas_n shall_v say_v what_o god_n say_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o creation_n let_v we_o make_v man_n according_a to_o our_o image_n be_v find_v true_a concern_v the_o new_a but_o in_o a_o more_o sublime_a sense_n have_v in_o this_o make_a use_n of_o his_o son_n to_o form_v man_n according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o justice_n and_o if_o barnabas_n do_v explain_v allegorical_o this_o say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n according_a to_o our_o image_n why_o may_v not_o the_o father_n in_o like_a manner_n explain_v these_o he_o speak_v and_o the_o thing_n be_v create_v hide_a and_o mystical_a meaning_n be_v always_o seek_v for_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n this_o ignatius_n do_v in_o his_o episte_n to_o the_o ephesian_n there_o be_v but_o one_o teacher_n say_v he_o that_o speak_v and_o the_o thing_n be_v do_v and_o all_o that_o he_o do_v in_o silence_n not_o only_o by_o teach_v but_o also_o suffer_v be_v altogether_o worthy_a of_o his_o father_n where_o you_o see_v he_o apply_v to_o j._n c._n what_o be_v say_v of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o new_a creation_n what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o old_a this_o be_v visible_a by_o the_o distinction_n he_o make_v between_o the_o speech_n and_o the_o silence_n of_o j._n c._n between_o what_o he_o perform_v by_o his_o preach_v and_o what_o he_o do_v by_o his_o obedience_n and_o patience_n let_v we_o go_v on_o with_o barnabas_n in_o chap._n 5._o whilst_o allegorise_v on_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n which_o flow_v with_o milk_n and_o honey_n we_o be_v those_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o we_o christian_n who_o god_n have_v bring_v into_o this_o bless_a land_n be_v nourish_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o carry_v on_o his_o allegory_n in_o chap._n 6._o enter_v into_o this_o bless_a land_n etc._n etc._n to_o which_o he_o give_v that_o spiritual_a mean_v learn_v what_o knowledge_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o sublime_a sense_n of_o this_o passage_n hope_v you_o say_v he_o in_o jesus_n who_o be_v to_o be_v manifest_v to_o you_o in_o flesh_n can_v he_o have_v recommend_v better_a to_o we_o the_o science_n of_o allegory_n which_o he_o call_v gnosticism_n or_o knowledge_n by_o way_n of_o excellency_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o adapt_n to_o j._n c._n what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o old_a and_o particular_o that_o of_o isaac_n he_o find_v there_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o of_o j._n c._n and_o conclude_v thus_o this_o calf_n this_o victim_n be_v j._n c._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can_v he_o say_v that_o the_o calf_n sacrifice_v be_v j._n c._n and_o may_v he_o not_o by_o the_o same_o way_n of_o speak_v be_v call_v the_o word_n because_o this_o be_v not_o only_o his_o figure_n but_o also_o the_o virtue_n that_o actuate_v he_o in_o the_o formation_n of_o the_o new_a world_n in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n he_o allegorize_v strange_o upon_o the_o circumcision_n he_o find_v there_o a_o certain_a cabala_n in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o person_n who_o abraham_n cause_v to_o be_v circumcise_a and_o discover_v there_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n as_o also_o his_o cross_n and_o what_o not_o this_o science_n be_v pregnant_a with_o invention_n it_o can_v find_v j._n c._n every_o where_o in_o a_o arithmetic_n number_n 318_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n of_o a_o noun_n the_o god_n have_v create_v and_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n of_o a_o verb_n let_v we_o make_v man._n see_v in_o chap._n 8._o his_o spiritual_a meaning_n which_o he_o draw_v from_o the_o prohibition_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o some_o creature_n and_o take_v notice_n that_o moses_n say_v this_o only_a in_o a_o figure_n regard_v the_o mystical_a sense_n the_o spirit_n and_o not_o the_o letter_n moses_n say_v he_o speak_v thus_o in_o spirit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o then_o moses_n do_v speak_v of_o j._n c._n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n create_v the_o world_n he_o do_v speak_v of_o this_o also_o in_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v not_o true_a but_o in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n in_o the_o 9th_o chapter_n beside_o the_o allegory_n on_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n
this_o author_n recommend_v it_o and_o that_o not_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o false_a one_o as_o clement_n of_o alexandria_n do_v afterward_o but_o absolute_o as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o as_o for_o i_o i_o doubt_v not_o at_o all_o that_o the_o jargon_n of_o the_o ensue_a father_n who_o blend_v the_o platonic_a study_n with_o the_o jewish_a method_n do_v proceed_v from_o this_o way_n of_o philosophize_v allegorical_o on_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v very_o innocent_a at_o first_o or_o rather_o they_o couple_v together_o the_o two_o method_n of_o allegorise_v namely_o the_o oriental_a and_o the_o greek_a clement_n hermas_n and_o barnabas_n carry_v on_o their_o allegory_n according_a to_o the_o oriental_a custom_n in_o order_n to_o find_v out_o the_o mystic_a sense_n the_o ensue_a father_n new_o come_v out_o of_o plato_n school_n and_o have_v a_o extraordinary_a conceit_n of_o his_o principle_n do_v from_o a_o innocent_a allegory_n build_v up_o a_o pagan_a philosophy_n which_o in_o give_v we_o three_o hypostasis_n give_v we_o also_o three_o god_n literal_o so_o and_o well_o tell_v father_n simon_n both_o saw_n and_o own_a this_o truth_n in_o his_o supplement_n to_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o jew_n pag._n 16._o some_o of_o the_o jew_n say_v he_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o platonic_a philosophy_n which_o they_o have_v blend_v with_o their_o frenzy_n whence_o arise_v a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o cabalistic_a science_n we_o ought_v also_o to_o attribute_v to_o this_o their_o study_v of_o the_o platonic_a philosophy_n many_o expression_n find_v in_o their_o ancient_a allegorical_a book_n which_o be_v not_o far_o distant_a from_o those_o the_o christian_n use_v to_o explain_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n let_v we_o consider_v well_o this_o remark_n it_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o trinity_n be_v not_o draw_v from_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o if_o the_o platonic_a jew_n who_o have_v not_o a_o grain_n of_o christianity_n do_v talk_v of_o this_o mystery_n like_o the_o christian_n and_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o attribute_v these_o expression_n only_o to_o the_o mixture_n of_o the_o platonic_a philosophy_n with_o their_o frenzy_n it_o will_v follow_v then_o that_o the_o christian_n likewise_o either_o bring_v this_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o school_n of_o plato_n or_o take_v it_o from_o the_o frenzy_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o we_o be_v induce_v to_o believe_v this_o to_o be_v so_o because_o the_o father_n who_o talk_v of_o it_o come_v out_o of_o that_o school_n and_o profess_a platonism_n before_o they_o be_v engage_v to_o christianity_n or_o at_o least_o before_o they_o have_v betake_v themselves_o to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o justin_n a●●●magoras_n yati●●_n theophilus_n irenaeus_n cleme●●_n of_o alea._n etc._n etc._n who_o be_v all_o profess_a sophis●_n show_v we_o i_o pray_v but_o one_o writer_n who_o speak_v of_o it_o from_o a_o principle_n of_o religion_n without_o bring_v in_o the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o philosophy_n do_v this_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a who_o without_o have_v study_v plato_n can_v speak_v of_o the_o word_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n alone_o if_o so_o be_v the_o scripture_n have_v speak_v of_o it_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o plato_n where_o be_v that_o christian_n that_o talk_v of_o it_o upon_o the_o basis_n of_o religion_n alone_o let_v he_o be_v produce_v there_o have_v be_v no_o doubt_n some_o who_o write_v concern_v religion_n but_o we_o have_v lose_v their_o work_n and_o why_o because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o stamp_n of_o plato_n moreover_o see_v these_o gentleman_n maintain_v that_o the_o christian_n of_o judea_n have_v the_o same_o sentiment_n in_o this_o affair_n with_o the_o gentile_a christian_n whence_o come_v it_o that_o no_o father_n but_o the_o gentile_a be_v produce_v and_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o circumcision_n and_o successor_n of_o st._n james_n be_v there_o none_o but_o philosopher_n that_o can_v write_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n the_o write_n of_o hegesippus_n the_o most_o considerable_a of_o the_o christian_a jew_n of_o who_o we_o have_v any_o account_n perish_v because_o of_o his_o error_n as_o valesius_fw-la upon_o eusebius_n observe_v it_o viz._n because_o he_o speak_v not_o the_o language_n of_o plato_n the_o rest_n have_v the_o same_o fate_n there_o be_v but_o few_o that_o remain_v as_o barnabas_n and_o hermas_n but_o have_v these_o talk_v of_o a_o pre-existent_a word_n not_o at_o all_o unless_o it_o be_v in_o allegory_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o i_o pray_v certain_o because_o they_o find_v it_o not_o in_o the_o christian_a religion_n nor_o yet_o in_o the_o jewish_a and_o have_v not_o study_v in_o the_o school_n of_o plato_n they_o can_v not_o bring_v it_o thence_o into_o the_o church_n of_o j._n c._n as_o to_o the_o book_n of_o hegesippus_n which_o perish_v because_o of_o their_o error_n i_o remember_v that_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o father_n do_v somewhat_o exclaim_v that_o valesius_fw-la do_v not_o declare_v express_o that_o they_o perish_v by_o reason_n of_o any_o error_n contrary_a to_o platonism_n a_o mere_a wrangle_n as_o if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o plato_n be_v not_o at_o that_o time_n and_o many_o age_n after_o the_o only_a rule_n by_o which_o truth_n and_o error_n be_v determine_v valesius_fw-la in_o this_o place_n speak_v of_o two_o sort_n of_o book_n that_o perish_v because_o of_o their_o error_n the_o first_o that_o give_v he_o occasion_n to_o mention_v the_o other_o be_v the_o hypotypose_n of_o clement_n of_o alexandria_n who_o have_v positive_a error_n wherewith_o platonism_n be_v offend_v pray_v read_v the_o 109_o cod._n of_o photius_n where_o this_o critic_n relate_v they_o i_o dare_v say_v that_o the_o eternity_n of_o matter_n the_o transmigration_n or_o the_o revolution_n of_o soul_n the_o commerce_n of_o angel_n with_o woman_n and_o other_o such_o like_a error_n which_o photius_n ascribe_v to_o clement_n trouble_v not_o much_o the_o good_a platonist_n we_o know_v that_o for_o the_o great_a part_n these_o be_v their_o darling_n what_o be_v it_o then_o at_o which_o they_o be_v so_o much_o offend_v those_o other_o error_n which_o overthrow_v the_o platonic_a hypothesis_n concern_v the_o generation_n and_o incarnation_n of_o the_o word_n viz._n the_o son_n be_v be_v number_v among_o the_o creature_n and_o that_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o word_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o father_n be_v incarnate_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o lesser_a of_o they_o but_o only_o that_o a_o certain_a virtue_n flow_v from_o the_o word_n itself_o do_v insinuate_v itself_o into_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o there_o become_v their_o understanding_n or_o reason_n this_o good_a father_n believe_v no_o other_o incarnation_n than_o that_o of_o human_a reason_n which_o flow_v out_o like_o a_o ray_n from_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n and_o descend_v into_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n to_o become_v their_o guide_n and_o light_n he_o be_v a_o true_a quaker_n the_o other_o book_n valesius_fw-la name_n be_v those_o of_o hegesippus_n and_o papias_n which_o in_o relation_n to_o platonism_n can_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o other_o error_n but_o those_o of_o omission_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o perish_v because_o of_o their_o simplicity_n and_o because_o they_o talk_v not_o like_o plato_n and_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v the_o same_o fate_n have_v likewise_o attend_v some_o other_o of_o the_o ancient_n that_o remain_v which_o as_o photius_n judge_n be_v too_o simple_a and_o too_o much_o reserve_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o divinity_n of_o j._n c._n but_o that_o some_o small_a respect_n for_o they_o preserve_v they_o the_o first_o age_n regard_v they_o as_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o this_o credit_n they_o have_v get_v in_o the_o church_n preserve_v they_o from_o shipwreck_n the_o defender_n be_v then_o to_o know_v that_o the_o tenent_n about_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n do_v always_o regulate_v the_o fate_n of_o book_n and_o author_n and_o that_o orthodoxy_n and_o heterodoxy_n be_v judge_v of_o according_a to_o these_o favourite_n tenant_n of_o plato_n why_o i_o pray_v have_v the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n of_o which_o the_o world_n ring_v so_o much_o destroy_v so_o many_o book_n and_o man_n be_v it_o not_o for_o these_o two_o tenant_n all_o the_o rampant_a dispute_n ever_o since_o turn_v upon_o those_o hinge_n the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v for_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o two_o article_n lie_v in_o a_o indivisible_a point_n all_o around_o be_v precipice_n of_o error_n there_o be_v so_o small_a a_o distance_n between_o truth_n and_o error_n that_o it_o be_v altogether_o imperceptible_a the_o trinitarian_n be_v divide_v into_o real_a and_o nominal_a among_o the_o real_a dr._n sherlock_n have_v his_o particular_a hypothesis_n the_o bishop_n of_o gloucester_z his_o as_o also_o
man_n because_o if_o i_o may_v say_v so_o these_o dispensation_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o great_a oeconomy_n of_o j._n c._n or_o rather_o of_o god_n the_o father_n manifest_v himself_o in_o the_o flesh_n of_o his_o son_n therefore_o irenaeus_n call_v it_o the_o dispensation_n which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n you_o may_v see_v what_o vossius_fw-la say_v in_o his_o note_n concern_v these_o allegory_n of_o barnabas_n and_o the_o other_o father_n it_o be_v know_v by_o all_o say_v he_o how_o these_o first_o christian_n interpret_v the_o scripture_n after_o a_o mystic_a and_o superstitious_a manner_n i_o be_v like_a to_o say_v childish_a and_o foolish_a cotelier_n say_v almost_o the_o same_o and_o show_v their_o absurdity_n but_o take_v this_o along_o with_o you_o that_o these_o dull_a allegory_n do_v not_o by_o far_o so_o much_o mischief_n as_o that_o christianity_n in_o masquerade_n which_o some_o other_o father_n borrow_v from_o plato_n it_o be_v of_o these_o you_o may_v more_o just_o say_v than_o of_o the_o allegorist_n according_a to_o one_o of_o our_o critic_n that_o the_o day_n these_o good_a father_n be_v write_v so_o many_o philosophic_a vision_n they_o void_v a_o purge_n purgamentum_fw-la aliquod_fw-la cacasse_fw-la let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o hermas_n who_o be_v as_o well_o store_v with_o vision_n and_o parable_n as_o barnabas_n at_o least_o his_o method_n be_v the_o same_o in_o his_o parable_n or_o similitude_n the_o 9th_o §_o 12._o he_o say_v that_o the_o rock_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n now_o the_o rock_n be_v of_o old_a because_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o any_o creature_n inasmuch_o as_o he_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n of_o his_o father_n in_o order_n to_o form_v the_o creature_n all_o this_o be_v say_v in_o a_o mystic_a and_o a_o allegoric_a sense_n to_o explain_v that_o the_o father_n do_v all_o in_o regard_n to_o his_o son_n and_o the_o new_a creation_n the_o author_n have_v say_v as_o much_o in_o his_o first_o vision_n §_o 4._o concern_v the_o church_n for_o ask_v of_o the_o angel_n why_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v a_o old_a woman_n the_o angel_n answer_v because_o she_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o be_v create_v and_o that_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o she_o the_o world_n be_v make_v it_o be_v likely_a in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o the_o translator_n render_v not_o per_fw-la illam_fw-la but_o propter_fw-la illam_fw-la you_o see_v then_o that_o this_o father_n say_v no_o more_o of_o j._n c._n than_o he_o do_v of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o these_o word_n antiquior_fw-la omni_fw-la creatura_fw-la mean_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o anus_fw-la prima_fw-la omnium_fw-la creata_fw-la which_o be_v true_a only_o in_o a_o mystic_a sense_n but_o false_a in_o the_o letter_n consequent_o then_o j._n c._n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o the_o church_n be_v so_o i_o mean_v in_o the_o decree_n and_o design_n of_o god_n which_o the_o author_n express_v by_o his_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o the_o father_n which_o he_o borrow_v manifest_o from_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n i_o shall_v now_o produce_v a_o remarkable_a instance_n of_o the_o alteration_n that_o ensue_v as_o to_o the_o tenent_n itself_o notwithstanding_o the_o term_n remain_v the_o same_o you_o see_v that_o hermas_n say_v here_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o any_o creature_n and_o that_o he_o speak_v so_o allegorical_o let_v we_o get_v over_o one_o age_n or_o two_o and_o you_o shall_v see_v origen_n make_v use_n of_o the_o same_o expression_n but_o in_o a_o arian_n sense_n the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v he_o lib._n 5._o contra_fw-la cell_n discover_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o we_o as_o the_o most_o ancient_a of_o all_o the_o creature_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o mean_v that_o he_o be_v create_v a_o little_a before_o the_o world_n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o our_o subject_n justin_n martyr_n who_o first_o teach_v the_o pre-existence_n of_o the_o word_n imitate_v the_o notion_n of_o hermas_n do_v teach_v the_o pre-existence_n of_o christian_n no_o less_o than_o that_o of_o christ_n himself_o whilst_o apol._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o all_o those_o who_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o word_n or_o reason_n as_o well_o greek_o as_o barbarian_n be_v christian_n and_o consequent_o christian_n do_v not_o commence_v yesterday_o or_o to_o day_n but_o be_v always_o and_o every_o where_o a_o principio_fw-la say_v he_o from_o the_o beginning_n attribute_v to_o they_o the_o very_a prerogative_n of_o the_o word_n itself_o these_o good_a man_n turn_v themselves_o every_o way_n to_o ward_v off_o the_o reproach_n of_o novelty_n wherewith_o christianity_n be_v charge_v in_o like_a manner_n eusehius_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v not_o new_a maintain_v that_o the_o patriarch_n profess_v it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v institute_v from_o the_o beginning_n hist_o eccles_n lib._n c._n 4._o thus_o much_o he_o can_v advance_v but_o in_o a_o mystic_a sense_n as_o he_o observe_v it_o himself_o because_o all_o those_o who_o act_v just_o and_o serve_v that_o god_n who_o be_v above_o all_o be_v christian_n consequent_o then_o christ_n can_v not_o converse_v otherwise_o with_o they_o but_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o they_o profess_v christianity_n which_o can_v be_v true_a but_o by_o way_n of_o analogy_n and_o accommodation_n christ_n then_o pre-existed_n as_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o christian_n do_v pre-exist_a let_v we_o return_v to_o hermas_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o allegorize_v even_o by_o his_o entitul_a his_n three_o book_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o pre-existence_n of_o j._n c._n similitude_n or_o parable_n which_o carry_v on_o throughout_o spiritual_a and_o mystic_a sense_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o similitude_n 5._o where_o he_o explain_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o father_n of_o a_o family_n in_o a_o theological_a manner_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o son_n the_o father_n in_o the_o plan_n of_o his_o allegory_n be_v the_o landlord_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o household_n and_o he_o who_o out_o of_o allegory_n be_v call_v the_o son_n be_v but_o a_o servant_n in_o the_o allegory_n the_o landlord_n say_v he_o be_v the_o same_o who_o create_v all_o thing_n the_o son_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o servant_n he_o go_v on_o and_o add_v a_o little_a after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n insinuate_v himself_o into_o the_o body_n wherein_o god_n be_v to_o dwell_v and_o this_o body_n whereinto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v insinuate_v himself_o have_v serve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o have_v be_v faithful_a to_o he_o always_o do_v obtain_v the_o approbation_n of_o god_n by_o his_o labour_n and_o obedience_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v be_v mean_v here_o the_o second_o person_n which_o be_v call_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o j._n c._n as_o dr._n bull_n pretend_v for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o hermas_n speak_v here_o of_o that_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n which_o prepare_v the_o body_n of_o j._n c._n for_o prophecy_n and_o consecrate_v it_o for_o a_o temple_n for_o god_n to_o dwell_v in_o and_o see_v this_o idea_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v being_n infuse_v into_o the_o body_n of_o j._n c._n be_v so_o conformable_a to_o what_o the_o holy_a scripture_n deliver_v concern_v it_o you_o must_v be_v very_o extravagant_a if_o you_o think_v that_o hermas_n differ_v from_o it_o beside_o what_o can_v he_o mean_v if_o his_o sense_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o dr._n bull_n attribute_n to_o he_o will_v he_o introduce_v two_o son_n of_o god_n so_o opposite_a one_o to_o the_o other_o the_o one_o who_o serve_v and_o obey_v and_o the_o other_o who_o be_v serve_v and_o obey_v and_o what_o be_v yet_o more_o strange_a two_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o selfsame_a person_n of_o j._n c._n our_o lord_n the_o son_n say_v hermas_n be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o servant_n now_o if_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o j._n c._n be_v denote_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o the_o servant_n signify_v the_o human_a nature_n you_o will_v have_v two_o son_n according_a to_o the_o very_a letter_n thus_o the_o orthodox_n embroil_v all_o thing_n to_o fish_n for_o mystery_n in_o trouble_a water_n whereas_o nothing_o be_v more_o clear_a than_o the_o meaning_n of_o hermas_n he_o allegorize_v and_o will_v say_v by_o he_o who_o the_o parable_n call_v the_o son_n i_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o by_o he_o who_o the_o parable_n call_v a_o servant_n i_o mean_v j._n c._n our_o lord_n who_o out_o of_o the_o parable_n be_v the_o proper_a son_n of_o
god_n and_o behold_v here_o the_o ground_n of_o my_o allegory_n viz._n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o insinuate_v himself_o into_o j._n c._n become_v his_o director_n and_o master_n may_v just_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o son_n of_o the_o family_n but_o j._n c._n himself_o have_v always_o obey_v the_o holy_a spirit_n must_v be_v compare_v to_o a_o servant_n it_o be_v therefore_o in_o allegory_n that_o j._n c._n be_v the_o servant_n and_o so_o likewise_o in_o allegory_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v in_o allegory_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o consequent_o in_o allegory_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o that_o he_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o god_n the_o whole_a be_v allegory_n in_o hermas_n the_o whole_a be_v vision_n similitude_n and_o parable_n there_o the_o faith_n in_o his_o write_n simil._n 9_o §_o 13_o and_o 15._o and_o all_o the_o other_o virtue_n be_v call_v holy_a spirit_n he_o usher_v they_o in_o like_a virgin_n well_o apparel_v kiss_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o also_o lie_v with_o hermas_n himself_o as_o with_o a_o brother_n the_o fiction_n of_o person_n be_v so_o familiar_a to_o this_o author_n that_o if_o you_o will_v find_v a_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n there_o you_o shall_v but_o catch_v at_o a_o shadow_n let_v it_o then_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o look_v for_o any_o thing_n but_o allegory_n and_o similitude_n in_o this_o book_n of_o he_o bear_v the_o same_o title_n whereas_o in_o the_o second_o book_n entitle_v the_o commandment_n where_o the_o doctrine_n be_v set_v forth_o more_o simple_o he_o speak_v not_o from_o the_o very_a first_o commandment_n but_o of_o one_o god_n the_o creator_n which_o be_v the_o whole_a idea_n he_o give_v we_o of_o this_o supreme_a be_v without_o any_o mention_n of_o three_o person_n of_o a_o eternal_a generation_n or_o incarnation_n which_o demonstrate_v that_o he_o have_v a_o different_a idea_n from_o that_o of_o a_o consubstantial_a trinity_n or_o of_o three_o equal_a hypostasis_n whatever_o he_o say_v elsewhere_o of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n but_o as_o this_o allegory_n of_o hermas_n touch_v christ_n mislead_v the_o platonic_a father_n who_o take_v it_o literal_o be_v prejudice_v by_o the_o philosophy_n they_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o there_o be_v another_o in_o the_o six_o commandment_n by_o which_o they_o be_v no_o less_o impose_v on_o there_o be_v say_v he_o two_o genius_n in_o man_n the_o one_o of_o justice_n the_o other_o of_o iniquity_n the_o greek_a have_v it_o no_o doubt_n two_o angel_n and_o so_o this_o passage_n be_v read_v in_o the_o translator_n of_o origen_n hom._n 35._o in_o luc._n dvos_fw-la angelos_n hereupon_o the_o father_n have_v grave_o hand_v down_o to_o we_o that_o there_o be_v two_o angel_n the_o one_o of_o good_a the_o other_o of_o evil_n that_o attend_v a_o man_n from_o his_o birth_n just_a as_o they_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o the_o angel_n fall_v in_o love_n with_o the_o daughter_n of_o man_n have_v mistake_v the_o allegory_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o delight_n to_o abide_v in_o our_o body_n but_o let_v the_o father_n talk_v on_o this_o be_v take_v in_o a_o literal_a sense_n be_v ridiculous_a and_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n especial_o the_o evil_a angel_n can_v it_o be_v doubt_v here_o that_o hermas_n intend_v only_o to_o allegorise_v upon_o the_o twofold_a inclination_n in_o man_n towards_o good_a and_o evil_a it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o chaldean_n jew_n and_o mahometan_n as_o also_o some_o pagan_a philosopher_n do_v affect_v such_o like_a allegory_n and_o personalize_v these_o two_o inclination_n every_o thing_n be_v a_o angel_n to_o the_o jew_n especial_o with_o the_o pharisee_n when_o they_o dispute_v against_o the_o sadducee_n who_o deny_v their_o existence_n as_o to_o the_o heathen_n we_o have_v show_v before_o that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o socrates_n be_v his_o daemon_n and_o genius_n we_o have_v stumble_v at_o this_o oriental_a philosophy_n which_o allegorize_v upon_o every_o thing_n spiritualise_v and_o personalize_v all_o it_o be_v by_o the_o like_a mistake_v that_o gross_a platonism_n take_v literal_o what_o the_o subtle_a platonism_n say_v only_o in_o allegory_n and_o make_v three_o hypostasis_n of_o the_o three_o divine_a power_n concur_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n now_o these_o divine_n who_o turn_v these_o two_o inclination_n in_o man_n into_o two_o angelical_a person_n be_v the_o same_o that_o metamorphose_v the_o power_n of_o god_n which_o create_v the_o world_n into_o a_o divine_a person_n a_o son_n beget_v of_o god_n and_o consubstantial_a with_o his_o father_n will_v you_o trust_v they_o still_o and_o boast_v notwithstanding_o of_o the_o acuteness_n and_o penetration_n of_o our_o age_n yet_o foolish_a enough_o to_o be_v besot_v with_o all_o these_o chimaera_n shall_v we_o never_o comprehend_v that_o what_o moses_n say_v in_o a_o literal_a sense_n that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o his_o command_n all_o thing_n be_v create_v in_o the_o beginning_n the_o apostle_n speak_v it_o in_o a_o mystic_a sense_n of_o j._n c._n who_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n which_o create_v all_o thing_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o new_a creation_n have_v put_v all_o thing_n into_o a_o new_a form_n and_o order_n as_o well_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n as_o the_o man_n here_o on_o earth_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o clemens_n romanus_n that_o the_o ancient_n make_v use_v of_o continual_a allusion_n to_o the_o first_o creation_n wherein_o they_o seek_v for_o a_o mystic_a sense_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o second_o perform_v by_o j._n c._n in_o his_o second_o ep._n c._n 1._o he_o speak_v thus_o of_o our_o redemption_n when_o we_o be_v without_o understanding_n and_o worship_v stone_n and_o wood_n god_n have_v pity_n on_o we_o for_o he_o call_v we_o when_o we_o be_v not_o in_o be_v and_o will_v have_v we_o to_o pass_v from_o no_o be_v into_o a_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o doubt_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o new_a creation_n and_o that_o in_o term_n as_o strong_a as_o be_v use_v in_o reference_n to_o the_o first_o cause_v we_o to_o pass_v from_o no_o be_v into_o a_o be_v as_o if_o we_o be_v form_v out_o of_o nothing_o when_o we_o be_v reform_v by_o the_o gospel_n these_o term_n seem_v to_o be_v absolute_a but_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o they_o and_o will_v do_v well_o if_o we_o seek_v here_o for_o a_o comparative_a sense_n consider_v that_o author_n neglect_v very_o often_o to_o use_v the_o particle_n denote_v this_o figure_n which_o soften_v the_o expression_n as_o for_o example_n as_o it_o be_v that_o we_o may_v say_v so_o if_o i_o may_v speak_v thus_o all_o may_v perceive_v that_o if_o clement_n have_v say_v of_o j._n c._n as_o he_o may_v have_v do_v that_o he_o call_v we_o when_o we_o be_v not_o in_o be_v and_o make_v we_o to_o exist_v out_o of_o nothing_o these_o word_n will_v have_v be_v stretch_v as_o if_o they_o attribute_v our_o creation_n out_o of_o nothing_o to_o j._n c._n it_o will_v have_v be_v say_v behold_v here_o j._n c._n particular_o describe_v to_o be_v he_o that_o call_v thing_n not_o in_o be_v as_o if_o they_o be_v now_o by_o a_o strong_a inference_n this_o sense_n ought_v to_o be_v give_v they_o see_v they_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n yet_o we_o must_v agree_v however_o herein_o for_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o subject_n require_v it_o that_o they_o intend_v only_o the_o new_a creation_n and_o consequent_o must_v own_v that_o when_o the_o sacred_a author_n and_o their_o disciple_n seem_v to_o attribute_v the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o j._n c._n we_o have_v the_o same_o reason_n to_o look_v on_o such_o like_a expression_n as_o allegory_n which_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o form_n of_o the_o new_a creature_n by_o representation_n draw_v from_o the_o old_a creation_n the_o same_o clement_n ep._n 1._o c._n 12._o allegorize_v upon_o the_o scarlet_a rope_n of_o rahab_n good_a critic_n do_v not_o question_v this_o though_o he_o speak_v as_o if_o his_o allegoric_a sense_n be_v the_o only_a true_a one_o for_o he_o praise_v not_o only_o the_o faith_n but_o also_o the_o prophecy_n of_o this_o woman_n declare_v by_o it_o the_o future_a redemption_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o j._n c._n this_o allegory_n of_o clemens_n say_v cotelier_n in_o his_o note_n be_v approve_v of_o by_o many_o of_o great_a note_n quote_v the_o father_n that_o follow_v he_o therein_o note_v he_o call_v it_o a_o allegory_n although_o in_o clement_n it_o have_v all_o the_o air_n of_o a_o simple_a and_o natural_a sense_n
if_o it_o be_v so_o his_o history_n of_o a_o phoenix_n ought_v not_o to_o seem_v so_o strange_a to_o we_o it_o be_v a_o fable_n contain_v a_o great_a truth_n in_o his_o opinion_n he_o make_v use_v of_o it_o as_o of_o a_o ingenious_a allegory_n that_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v make_v express_o to_o represent_v to_o man_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n as_o to_o the_o rest_n whenever_o clement_n do_v not_o allegorise_v he_o explain_v to_o we_o simple_o his_o sentiment_n about_o the_o word_n and_o the_o trinity_n as_o to_o the_o former_a he_o say_v in_o chap._n 27._o of_o his_o one_a ep._n to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o god_n found_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n and_o that_o he_o can_v destroy_v they_o by_o the_o same_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d utrobique_fw-la whence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o word_n in_o his_o sense_n be_v only_o the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o god_n by_o which_o as_o he_o create_v the_o world_n he_o can_v also_o destroy_v it_o when_o he_o please_v this_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n say_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o heaven_n make_v and_o all_o the_o host_n of_o they_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n psal_n 33.6_o and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o breath_n he_o destroy_v the_o wicked_a isa_n 11.4_o &_o 2_o thess_n 2.8_o we_o can_v find_v here_o the_o platonic_a idea_n of_o a_o personalize_v word_n so_o that_o photius_n have_v reason_n to_o complain_v bibl._n cod._n 126._o that_o clement_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o j._n c._n in_o that_o sublime_a style_n which_o be_v make_v use_n of_o when_o god_n be_v speak_v of_o his_o simplicity_n have_v offend_v those_o that_o love_v only_o the_o high-flown_a philosophy_n of_o plato_n for_o whereas_o a_o platonic_a christian_n will_v never_o have_v omit_v on_o such_o a_o occasion_n to_o inculcate_v that_o god_n the_o father_n create_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o son_n who_o be_v his_o word_n and_o eternal_a wisdom_n clement_n be_v dumb_a here_o and_o content_v himself_o to_o attribute_v the_o creation_n to_o the_o power_n or_o the_o command_n of_o god_n elsewhere_o when_o he_o speak_v express_o of_o j._n c._n he_o withhold_v himself_o from_o give_v he_o any_o other_o excellency_n or_o title_n than_o those_o result_v from_o the_o office_n he_o possess_v by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n as_o a_o recompense_n for_o his_o suffering_n viz._n those_o of_o a_o highpriest_n and_o lord_n never_o quote_v any_o other_o passage_n but_o those_o that_o serve_v to_o this_o purpose_n as_o to_o his_o trinity_n nothing_o be_v more_o simple_a for_o be_v willing_a to_o move_v the_o corinthian_n to_o concord_n and_o union_n he_o allege_v this_o motive_n among_o the_o rest_n have_v we_o any_o other_o but_o the_o same_o god_n the_o same_o christ_n and_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o grace_n shed_v upon_o we_o this_o be_v a_o trinity_n of_o a_o man_n true_o apostolic_a one_o god_n one_o messiah_n and_o one_o spirit_n shed_v upon_o the_o faithful_a chap._n xviii_o of_o the_o method_n of_o the_o refine_a platonist_n and_o of_o allegory_n in_o general_n from_z these_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o disciple_n of_o plato_n peruse_v the_o platonist_n writer_n and_o you_o will_v therein_o find_v yet_o some_o remain_v of_o well_o contrive_v platonism_n they_o have_v conceive_v the_o idea_n and_o archetype_n of_o all_o creature_n which_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a world_n to_o be_v in_o the_o intelligible_a world_n do_v easy_o invent_v a_o spiritual_a and_o intelligible_a gospel_n which_o be_v the_o substance_n and_o first_o form_n of_o the_o sensible_a gospel_n a_o distinction_n which_o origen_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o make_v as_o he_o distinguish_v between_o the_o exemplary_a and_o ideal_o word_n different_a from_o the_o sensible_a word_n and_o as_o he_o express_v it_o in_o his_o second_n tom._n on_o john_n a_o word_n which_o be_v in_o god_n and_o which_o be_v as_o different_a from_o that_o which_o be_v make_v flesh_n as_o a_o original_a be_v from_o the_o copy_n substance_n and_o reality_n from_o the_o shadow_n they_o use_v the_o comparison_n of_o a_o architect_n who_o have_v in_o his_o mind_n the_o idea_n and_o plan_n of_o a_o house_n he_o intend_v to_o build_v whereon_o they_o give_v themselves_o liberty_n find_v all_o the_o wonder_n of_o our_o gospel_n in_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o divine_a understanding_n if_o in_o the_o sensible_a church_n there_o be_v find_v a_o oracle_n and_o interpreter_n from_o god_n bear_v of_o the_o father_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v the_o new_a creature_n by_o the_o power_n and_o wisdom_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o father_n to_o this_o they_o make_v another_o answer_n in_o the_o intelligible_a church_n a_o word_n proceed_v from_o the_o bosom_n or_o understanding_n of_o god_n beget_v of_o his_o substance_n who_o be_v the_o eternal_a wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o secondary_a cause_n of_o all_o thing_n subsist_v in_o the_o world_n take_v off_o the_o veil_n of_o allegory_n or_o rather_o suppose_v all_o that_o to_o be_v allegory_n and_o it_o be_v a_o rational_a philosophy_n which_o reduce_v all_o to_o god_n eternal_a decree_n as_o the_o prime_a cause_n of_o all_o existent_a being_n but_o particular_o of_o christ_n who_o be_v with_o respect_n to_o his_o essence_n the_o only_a son_n and_o first_o bear_v of_o all_o creature_n consequent_o be_v in_o god_n understanding_n the_o idea_n which_o god_n immediate_o beget_v whereon_o all_o other_o depend_v he_o be_v i_o say_v the_o noble_a idea_n or_o as_o some_o speak_v the_o idea_n of_o idea_n and_o if_o they_o find_v this_o christ_n in_o the_o idea_n and_o decree_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v if_o they_o find_v he_o also_o in_o the_o ancient_a dispensation_n of_o angel_n while_o it_o be_v not_o more_o difficult_a see_v he_o in_o those_o first_o sketche_n than_o in_o the_o design_n and_o idea_n which_o god_n have_v frame_v of_o he_o thus_o far_o i_o perceive_v right_a platonism_n i_o see_v in_o it_o the_o footstep_n of_o what_o it_o be_v when_o in_o its_o purity_n and_o i_o at_o the_o same_o time_n observe_v in_o it_o fair_a remain_v of_o ancient_a allegory_n either_o of_o the_o jew_n or_o of_o the_o chaldaean_n who_o delight_v in_o profound_a sense_n and_o theological_a interpretation_n but_o i_o no_o soon_o cast_v my_o eye_n on_o those_o eternal_a substance_n conceive_v as_o real_a emanation_n those_o emanation_n as_o real_a generation_n and_o those_o generation_n as_o subsist_v person_n than_o i_o see_v only_o deprave_v platonism_n as_o absurd_a as_o the_o theology_n of_o the_o poet_n and_o as_o unpolished_a as_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o most_o superstitious_a vulgar_a to_o make_v this_o truth_n the_o more_o evident_a it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o say_v somewhat_o of_o allegory_n and_o of_o the_o use_n which_o the_o ancient_n make_v of_o it_o but_o we_o must_v as_o i_o promise_v in_o page_n 64._o at_o the_o same_o time_n show_v that_o disciple_n who_o ofttimes_o change_v their_o master_n method_n do_v nevertheless_o retain_v certain_a remain_n of_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n which_o betray_v they_o and_o discover_v their_o innovation_n that_o be_v we_o will_v show_v the_o track_n of_o the_o ancient_a manner_n of_o allegorise_v even_o in_o those_o very_a man_n who_o have_v abandon_v the_o allegory_n of_o the_o three_o principle_n and_o choose_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o three_o hypostasis_n i_o have_v already_o give_v some_o account_n of_o it_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v recall_v to_o mind_n by_o the_o reader_n to_o join_v to_o what_o i_o have_v far_o to_o say_v thereon_o allegory_n be_v a_o figure_n in_o speech_n whereby_o one_o thing_n be_v express_v and_o another_o intimate_v by_o rise_v from_o the_o literal_a to_o a_o noble_a and_o more_o theological_a sense_n see_v grotius_n on_o matth._n ch_z 1.22_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o speak_v of_o the_o enigmatical_a science_n of_o the_o chaldean_n and_o egyptian_n but_o come_v direct_o to_o the_o philosophy_n which_o be_v most_o know_v to_o we_o but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o particular_n i_o must_v advertise_v my_o reader_n that_o if_o he_o will_v be_v full_o inform_v on_o this_o head_n he_o may_v read_v all_o the_o 5_o book_n of_o the_o stromates_n of_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o quote_v thence_o the_o follow_a word_n which_o give_v we_o a_o general_a idea_n of_o the_o ancient_n method_n in_o the_o use_n they_o make_v of_o allegory_n all_o those_o say_v that_o father_n who_o have_v treat_v of_o divine_a matter_n as_o well_o greek_o as_o barbarian_n conceal_v the_o principle_n of_o thing_n wrap_v the_o truth_n in_o enigma_n symbol_n allegory_n and_o metaphor_n as_o intricate_a as_o those_o of_o the_o oracle_n even_o the_o poet_n who_o
have_v innovate_v he_o must_v know_v little_a of_o plato_n who_o can_v believe_v that_o he_o can_v fall_v into_o so_o dull_a a_o philosophy_n as_o that_o god_n do_v from_o all_o eternity_n necessary_o beget_v a_o son_n a_o second_o god_n put_v he_o forth_o out_o of_o himself_o with_o his_o proper_a hypostasis_fw-la which_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o father_n and_o that_o he_o make_v use_v of_o he_o to_o create_v the_o world_n unless_o it_o be_v perhaps_o to_o deceive_v the_o vulgar_a people_n but_o that_o god_n do_v voluntary_o conceive_v a_o design_n of_o create_v the_o world_n that_o he_o do_v actual_o create_v it_o by_o his_o efficacious_a word_n that_o that_o word_n be_v his_o son_n in_o a_o allegorical_a sense_n because_o it_o be_v emanated_a from_o the_o divine_a understanding_n that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o allegorical_a sense_n the_o creator_n because_o it_o be_v the_o mean_n and_o instrument_n which_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n make_v use_n of_o to_o give_v life_n and_o be_v to_o all_o thing_n then_o indeed_o i_o own_o literal_o moses_n say_v that_o god_n speak_v and_o the_o creature_n obey_v then_o i_o shall_v own_o plato_n allegory_n tell_v i_o the_o same_o thing_n with_o moses_n but_o in_o the_o style_n of_o the_o religion_n wherein_o he_o be_v bear_v then_o to_o conclude_v i_o own_o the_o good_a divinity_n of_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n who_o assure_v i_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o that_o which_o be_v beget_v but_o supreme_a goodness_n profound_a wisdom_n and_o infinite_a power_n manifest_v itself_o in_o the_o work_n of_o this_o universe_n this_o be_v without_o doubt_n the_o true_a way_n of_o understanding_n plato_n and_o we_o have_v a_o famous_a platonist_n as_o our_o warrant_n for_o it_o it_o be_v coelius_n rhodoginus_n lect._n antiq_fw-la lib._n 9_o c._n 12._o for_o that_o great_a man_n very_o judicious_o observe_v that_o one_o can_v never_o be_v a_o good_a platonist_n if_o he_o do_v not_o reckon_v that_o plato_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v allegorical_o good_a platonist_n like_o the_o author_n of_o the_o recognition_n discover_v to_o we_o the_o origin_n of_o this_o allegorical_a philosophy_n by_o say_v that_o from_o the_o first_o will_n proceed_v another_o will_n and_o from_o this_o the_o world_n lib._n 1._o c._n 24._o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o from_o the_o first_o eternal_a and_o internal_o beget_v will_n proceed_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o all_o thing_n a_o second_o will_n external_o beget_v a_o express_a command_n which_o speak_v all_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o this_o second_o will_n be_v metaphorical_o the_o son_n because_o proceed_v from_o god_n himself_o and_o from_o the_o invisibility_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o his_o nature_n it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o generation_n produce_v his_o image_n every_o manifestation_n be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n irenaeus_n be_v also_o another_o of_o the_o good_a platonist_n who_o allegorize_v in_o many_o place_n of_o his_o treatise_n against_o heresy_n he_o suppose_v god_n not_o to_o have_v need_v any_o more_o than_o his_o two_o hand_n to_o create_v the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o perceive_v his_o intention_n through_o those_o word_n whereas_o the_o heretic_n maintain_v that_o all_o be_v make_v by_o angel_n and_o that_o those_o spirit_n have_v create_v the_o world_n irenaeus_n in_o oppose_v that_o doctrine_n fly_v into_o the_o opposite_a extreme_a viz._n that_o god_n who_o have_v no_o need_n of_o angel_n make_v use_v of_o no_o more_o than_o his_o two_o hand_n his_o word_n and_o his_o spirit_n to_o do_v all_o thing_n not_o that_o by_o those_o two_o power_n he_o understand_v two_o hypostasis_n but_o only_o personalize_v they_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o aeons_n or_o to_o the_o gnostic_n angel_n which_o be_v esteem_v person_n and_o he_o mean_v nothing_o more_o than_o that_o god_n need_v not_o any_o other_o than_o himself_o as_o he_o explain_v himself_o in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n and_o in_o no_o wise_a any_o power_n separate_v from_o he_o have_v a_o hypostasis_fw-la distinct_a from_o his_o this_o god_n say_v he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n what_o do_v these_o word_n signify_v that_o god_n need_v no_o other_o than_o himself_o if_o not_o that_o god_n have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o more_o than_o his_o command_n and_o power_n to_o operate_v what_o he_o will_v now_o this_o command_n and_o this_o power_n be_v not_o two_o hypostasis_n separate_v and_o distinct_a from_o his_o which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o heretic_n but_o two_o power_n which_o he_o employ_v as_o his_o two_o hand_n either_o let_v we_o blind_v ourselves_o or_o see_v allegory_n in_o all_o this_o again_o it_o be_v by_o a_o common_a figure_n that_o the_o name_n the_o quality_n and_o even_o the_o personality_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o cease_v to_o be_v or_o which_o be_v reject_v be_v give_v to_o that_o which_o take_v its_o place_n though_o it_o be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n god_n reject_v sacrifice_n give_v the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o obedience_n which_o he_o accept_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o natural_a say_v dr._n a._n in_o his_o manuscript_n concern_v the_o satisfaction_n than_o to_o give_v to_o a_o thing_n which_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o another_o and_o which_o procure_v all_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o the_o name_n of_o that_o instead_o whereof_o it_o be_v substitute_v st._n paul_n observe_v this_o rule_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n if_o he_o give_v the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v to_o suit_v his_o expression_n to_o the_o idea_n which_o prevail_v under_o the_o ancient_a dispensation_n wherein_o the_o principal_a act_n of_o piety_n consist_v in_o sacrifice_n he_o apply_v those_o ancient_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o intend_v any_o other_o mystery_n in_o it_o whereto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o jesus_n christ_n speak_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v to_o teach_v the_o truth_n by_o his_o inspiration_n as_o he_o himself_o have_v teach_v it_o by_o preach_v speak_v of_o he_o as_o of_o a_o teacher_n as_o of_o a_o person_n because_o he_o be_v to_o supply_v the_o absence_n of_o a_o teacher_n and_o fill_v the_o place_n of_o a_o person_n so_o as_o the_o gnostic_n speak_v of_o nothing_o but_o angel_n who_o have_v create_v the_o world_n and_o govern_v the_o ancient_a people_n and_o of_o emanation_n and_o generation_n from_o the_o supreme_a be_v irenaeus_n answer_v the_o true_a angel_n which_o create_v the_o world_n and_o teach_v the_o prophet_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o his_o spirit_n and_o that_o word_n and_o spirit_n be_v his_o true_a emanation_n so_o make_v of_o a_o manifestation_n and_o of_o a_o communication_n god_n helper_n his_o coadjutor_n in_o the_o creation_n his_o minister_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n make_v i_o say_v so_o many_o hypostasis_n of_o the_o godhead_n of_o those_o power_n because_o he_o substitute_n they_o in_o lieu_n of_o the_o hypostasis_n reject_v by_o he_o it_o be_v by_o the_o fame_n method_n that_o theophilus_n of_o antioch_n make_v entire_o allegorical_a commentary_n on_o the_o four_o gospel_n thus_o he_o allegorize_v the_o first_o word_n of_o st._n john_n the_o beginning_n say_v he_o that_o be_v god_n the_o word_n that_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n say_v in_o the_o psalm_n my_o heart_n have_v utter_v a_o good_a word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o without_o he_o nothing_o be_v make_v nothing_o that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o idol_n which_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o method_n of_o this_o author_n who_o design_n the_o explain_v the_o gospel_n allegorical_o and_o particular_o by_o the_o allegorical_a explanation_n he_o give_v of_o the_o word_n beginning_n and_o of_o that_o of_o nothing_o that_o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o word_n be_v likewise_o allegorical_a the_o word_n say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o christ_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v be_v not_o that_o say_n that_o it_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o man_n who_o god_n have_v anoint_v who_o be_v the_o son_n and_o the_o word_n by_o who_o power_n all_o under_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v even_o the_o idol_n which_o be_v make_v without_o he_o have_v be_v destroy_v and_o the_o world_n reform_v let_v we_o deal_v plain_o christ_n be_v the_o word_n only_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o allegorical_a sense_n which_o consider_v he_o as_o a_o second_o word_n in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o spiritual_a world_n what_o the_o word-god_n be_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o sensible_a world_n it_o
seem_v this_o allegorical_a exposition_n of_o the_o word_n of_o st._n john_n be_v not_o unknown_a in_o the_o time_n of_o hippolytus_n hunrl_n de_fw-fr deo_fw-la trino_fw-la &_o uno_fw-la contra_fw-la noe●um_fw-la for_o he_o waise_v a_o objection_n to_o himself_o which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v unge_v against_o the_o platonizer_n but_o say_v that_o far_o some_o will_v say_v to_o i_o you_o introduce_v 〈…〉_o when_o you_o call_v the_o 〈…〉_o st._n john_n indeed_o speak_v of_o a_o word_n but_o he_o understand_v it_o otherwise_o and_o by_o allegory_n hippolytus_n do_v not_o whole_o reject_v this_o exposition_n and_o afterward_o answer_v that_o in_o truth_n the_o word_n be_v call_v son_n from_o the_o beginning_n only_o because_o it_o be_v afterward_o to_o take_v birth_n and_o become_v a_o son_n the_o word_n of_o itself_o and_o without_o flesh_n not_o be_v a_o perfect_a son_n which_o show_v that_o according_a to_o he_o the_o word_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o divine_a operation_n which_o be_v the_o son_n but_o improper_o and_o by_o a_o imperfect_a generation_n before_o it_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n one_o will_v think_v servetus_n have_v copy_v hippolytus_n lib._n 2._o p._n 90._o let_v we_o say_v he_o exact_o follow_v the_o scripture-stile_n let_v we_o say_v the_o word_n where_o that_o say_v the_o word_n and_o the_o son_n where_o that_o say_v the_o son_n a_o former_o the_o word_n now_o the_o son_n that_o if_o the_o word_n be_v former_o the_o son_n it_o be_v only_o because_o it_o have_v the_o form_n and_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o son_n which_o be_v to_o come_v i_o will_v then_o say_v say_v he_o in_o another_o place_n the_o prolation_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n one_o of_o our_o bishop_n do_v not_o seem_v to_o dislike_v the_o so_o explain_v the_o word_n son_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n rather_o than_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o begotten-word_n thus_o he_o speak_v 2d_o discourse_n to_o the_o clergy_n p._n 99_o many_o have_v think_v that_o the_o term_n son_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o bless_a three_o but_o only_o to_o our_o saviour_n as_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n the_o jew_n have_v have_v that_o notion_n of_o the_o messiah_n that_o as_o he_o be_v to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n so_o he_o be_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n now_o some_o critic_n do_v apprehend_v that_o since_o in_o many_o place_n the_o term_n son_n of_o god_n have_v manifest_o a_o relation_n to_o christ_n as_o the_o messiah_n there_o be_v in_o this_o a_o uniformity_n in_o the_o whole_a scripture-stile_n so_o that_o every_o where_o by_o the_o hrase_n son_n of_o god_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v jesus_n as_o the_o messiah_n but_o that_o the_o divine_a principle_n that_o be_v in_o he_o be_v in_o the_o strictness_n of_o speech_n to_o be_v call_v as_o st._n john_n do_v the_o word_n so_o that_o by_o this_o if_o true_a all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d conce●●ing_v a_o eternal_a 〈◊〉_d be_v out_o off_o in_o the_o strict_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n the_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n every_o emanation_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o may_v be_v so_o call_v whenoe_n appear_v how_o vain_a dr._n bull_n be_v endeavour_n be_v judic_n eccles_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o four_o sort_n of_o filiation_n allege_v by_o the_o socinian_o to_o fill_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o term_n son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o sufficient_a the_o constant_a phraseology_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n ruin_v his_o pretence_n while_o not_o one_o of_o those_o expression_n son_n of_o god_n be_v applicable_a to_o a_o eternal_a generation_n and_o that_o also_o show_v that_o the_o term_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can_v be_v otherwise_o refer_v than_o to_o that_o divine_a operation_n which_o over-shadowed_n the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o to_o that_o effusion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o consecrate_v jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o office_n of_o messiah_n and_o this_o powerful_a virtue_n can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o allegorical_a son_n as_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a emanation_n and_o every_o emanation_n a_o improper_a and_o figurative_a generation_n it_o be_v to_o little_a purpose_n that_o dr._n bull_n with_o the_o mahometan_n object_n to_o we_o that_o in_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n or_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o first_o man_n who_o be_v make_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n nor_o from_o enoch_n who_o be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n we_o answer_v with_o bartholomew_n of_o edessa_n confut._n aguren_n what_o a_o pitiful_a argument_n that_o be_v if_o adam_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o jesus_n christ_n because_o he_o be_v make_v by_o god_n own_o hand_n without_o man_n operation_n it_o will_v thence_o follow_v that_o the_o first_o ass_n and_o the_o first_o dog_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o adam_n and_o to_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o a_o less_o excellent_a nature_n because_o they_o be_v immediate_o create_v as_o well_o as_o adam_n and_o j.c._n this_o author_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o what_o distinguish_v adam_n from_o other_o animal_n or_o j._n christ_n from_o adam_n himself_o be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o miracle_n of_o their_o birth_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v every_o way_n equal_a as_o the_o excellency_n of_o those_o gist_n which_o they_o more_o or_o less_o receive_v by_o that_o extraordinary_a birth_n and_o those_o degree_n of_o excellence_n be_v show_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o god_n in_o adam_n nostril_n and_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o conception_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o divine_a breath_n raise_v adam_n above_o all_o other_o animal_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v doubtless_o something_o more_o noble_a than_o that_o breath_n have_v raise_v jesus_n christ_n above_o the_o first_o man_n and_o make_v he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o a_o more_o proper_a and_o more_o peculiar_a manner_n so_o we_o be_v likewise_o to_o argue_v on_o the_o exaltation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o show_v that_o it_o raise_v he_o infinite_o above_o enoch_n not_o by_o the_o mere_a miracle_n of_o raise_v he_o to_o heaven_n but_o by_o the_o sovereign_a power_n which_o be_v then_o communicate_v to_o he_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o origen_n we_o may_v copy_v his_o whole_a work_n read_v only_o his_o first_o tome_n on_o st._n john_n where_o he_o strong_o dispute_v against_o the_o valentinian_o 1._o in_o show_v they_o that_o since_o they_o expound_v the_o other_o name_n give_v to_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o life_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o light_n etc._n etc._n anagogical_o and_o allegorical_o they_o be_v his_o own_o term_n it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a that_o they_o keep_v to_o the_o same_o rule_n in_o interpret_n the_o name_n of_o word_n and_o give_v it_o a_o allegorical_a and_o figurative_a sense_n it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a say_v he_o to_o they_o that_o you_o will_v not_o expound_v the_o term_n word_n in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n while_o you_o allegorical_o explain_v that_o other_o phrase_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o since_o jesus_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o light_n because_o of_o his_o work_n or_o office_n which_o be_v to_o enlighten_v the_o world_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v also_o call_v the_o word_n because_o of_o his_o work_n which_o be_v to_o cure_v we_o of_o our_o error_n and_o folly_n to_o prepare_v we_o to_o act_v conformable_o to_o truth_n and_o reason_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o just_a than_o this_o observation_n of_o origen_n st._n john_n style_n be_v altogether_o oriental_n full_a of_o harsh_a metaphor_n hyperbolical_a expression_n and_o very_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o speak_v it_o be_v however_o impossible_a for_o one_o free_v from_o prejudices_fw-la to_o mistake_v they_o how_o why_o every_o man_n who_o head_n be_v not_o fill_v with_o mad_a platonism_n will_v not_o look_v for_o more_o mystery_n in_o the_o term_n word_n than_o in_o those_o of_o light_n way_n life_n and_o truth_n etc._n etc._n title_n which_o the_o evangelist_n no_o less_o attribute_n to_o jesus_n christ_n than_o the_o former_a indeed_o if_o this_o divine_a saviour_n be_v the_o light_n and_o the_o truth_n because_o he_o be_v the_o bearer_n of_o a_o doctrine_n which_o dissipate_v our_o darkness_n and_o error_n if_o he_o be_v the_o way_n and_o the_o life_n because_o he_o open_v to_o we_o the_o way_n of_o attain_v everlasting_a happiness_n why_o may_v we_o not_o argue_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n on_o this_o other_o term_n word_n and_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o say_v that_o j._n christ_n be_v so_o call_v because_o he_o be_v the_o bearer_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o excellence_n and_o the_o interpreter_n of_o his_o most_o authentic_a truth_n 2._o origen_n endeavour_v to_o take_v from_o the_o valentinian_o two_o passage_n
in_o the_o 33d_o and_o 45th_o psalm_n which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o term_n word_n have_v no_o other_o signification_n than_o that_o of_o prolation_n proper_o so_o call_v for_o he_o suppose_v that_o these_o word_n my_o heart_n have_v utter_v a_o good_a word_n do_v not_o signify_v such_o a_o prolation_n a_o proper_a and_o literal_a generation_n but_o a_o metaphorical_a prolation_n and_o that_o from_o this_o reason_n that_o the_o word_n heart_n in_o this_o text_n be_v figurative_a the_o term_n word_n must_v also_o be_v figurative_a and_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o apprehend_v how_o far_o origen_n carry_v the_o figure_n of_o this_o word_n the_o other_o text_n which_o he_o quote_v from_o the_o psalm_n so_o full_o clear_v the_o matter_n as_o to_o leave_v no_o room_n for_o cavil_v the_o valentinian_o say_v he_o believe_v that_o these_o word_n the_o heaven_n be_v create_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n be_v say_v of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n though_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o one_o may_v give_v they_o this_o other_o sense_n that_o the_o heaven_n be_v establish_v by_o divine_a reason_n and_o wisdom_n ratione_fw-la dei_fw-la as_o we_o say_v that_o a_o house_n be_v build_v by_o that_o skill_n which_o be_v the_o art_n of_o build_v house_n i_o leave_v the_o reader_n to_o judge_n whether_o a_o vnitarian_n can_v more_o plain_o remove_v all_o the_o idea_n of_o hypostasis_fw-la from_o our_o mind_n therefore_o when_o the_o same_o origen_n do_v elsewhere_o argue_v concern_v the_o word_n as_o if_o he_o himself_o believe_v it_o a_o hypostasis_fw-la his_o so_o speak_v be_v according_o to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o greek_a philosophy_n for_o as_o porphyry_n right_o observe_v origen_n have_v continual_o apply_v himself_o to_o read_v the_o write_n of_o the_o platonist_n and_o the_o pythagorean_n and_o have_v therein_o learn_v the_o allegorical_a way_n of_o those_o philosopher_n expound_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o greek_n make_v use_v of_o it_o himself_o in_o his_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 19_o see_v likewise_o bibl._n univ_o t._n 6._o p._n 50._o that_o declare_a enemy_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v not_o the_o only_a person_n who_o have_v give_v that_o judgement_n of_o origen_n mr._n huet_n do_v not_o treat_v he_o more_o favourable_o in_o his_o origeniana_n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o origen_n say_v he_o be_v one_o of_o plato_n great_a admirer_n insomuch_o that_o instead_o of_o suit_v the_o platonic_a tenant_n to_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n he_o regulate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n by_o the_o dogma_fw-la of_o the_o platonist_n and_o a_o little_a low_o he_o add_v that_o origen_n have_v be_v carry_v to_o those_o excess_n by_o the_o example_n of_o his_o preceptor_n clemens_n alexand._n who_o use_v to_o embellish_v the_o religion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n with_o the_o academic_a paint_n can_v any_o one_o think_v that_o justin_n do_v not_o discourse_n by_o the_o principle_n of_o this_o allegorical_a philosophy_n when_o in_o his_o second_o apology_n he_o call_v the_o reason_n which_o be_v in_o man_n a_o part_n and_o seed_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o divine_a word_n the_o divine_a word_n be_v in_o his_o sense_n only_o that_o universal_a reason_n that_o source_n and_o fullness_n of_o wisdom-which_a reside_v in_o the_o divine_a understanding_n whereof_o we_o be_v a_o stream_n and_o a_o part_n be_v our_o reason_n a_o hypostasis_fw-la distinct_a from_o man_n how_o shall_v we_o then_o imagine_v that_o this_o father_n ever_o intend_v to_o say_v that_o divine_a reason_n be_v a_o hypostasis_fw-la distinct_a from_o god_n i_o may_v very_o well_o say_v that_o my_o reason_n have_v teach_v i_o such_o a_o thing_n and_o that_o i_o consult_v my_o reason_n without_o suppose_v my_o reason_n to_o be_v any_o other_o person_n than_o myself_o then_o why_o may_v we_o not_o say_v god_n make_v use_n of_o his_o reason_n to_o create_v this_o universe_n that_o his_o reason_n be_v his_o counsellor_n and_o his_o minister_n without_o make_v a_o second_o person_n of_o his_o reason_n certain_o my_o reason_n can_v be_v personalize_v any_o otherwise_o than_o by_o the_o power_n of_o allegory_n neither_o can_v that_o of_o god_n be_v any_o otherwise_o nay_o it_o may_v be_v that_o justin_n strain_v his_o allegory_n yet_o far_o and_o that_o he_o intend_v to_o say_v that_o reason_n or_o the_o universal_a seed_n be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v not_o a_o part_n of_o the_o seed_n as_o the_o precept_n of_o reason_n which_o enlighten_v the_o philosopher_n be_v but_o the_o fullness_n of_o that_o incorruptible_a seed_n which_o regenerate_v the_o heart_n i_o will_v produce_v another_o example_n of_o this_o allegorical_a way_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n st._n cyprian_n explain_v that_o famous_a passage_n of_o st._n john_n 1_o ep._n 5.8_o concern_v the_o three_o witness_n on_o earth_n the_o spirit_n the_o water_n and_o the_o blood_n have_v speak_v of_o they_o as_o of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o three_o witness_n in_o heaven_n now_o find_v in_o our_o bibles_n but_o be_v not_o there_o in_o the_o day_n of_o that_o father_n some_o as_o fulgentius_n have_v confound_v st._n cyprian_n discourse_v with_o the_o sacred_a text_n do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o holy_a martyr_n have_v speak_v literal_o and_o as_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n what_o he_o say_v only_o in_o allegory_n not_o observe_v that_o what_o he_o assert_v of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o spiritual_a sense_n which_o he_o have_v draw_v from_o the_o three_o witness_n on_o earth_n as_o if_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o father_n the_o blood_n the_o son_n and_o the_o water_n the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o facundus_n do_v not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v at_o all_o deceive_v by_o it_o for_o he_o inform_v we_o defence_n trinit_fw-la capit._fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 3._o that_o st._n cyprian_n will_v have_v that_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o st._n john_n say_v of_o the_o spirit_n water_n and_o blood_n which_o can_v be_v only_o a_o allegorical_a interpretation_n and_o that_o allegory_n be_v follow_v by_o st._n augustin_n contra_fw-la maxim_n lib._n 3._o c._n 12._o where_o he_o express_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n the_o water_n and_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o mystery_n and_o allegory_n now_o i_o pray_v who_o can_v warrant_v i_o that_o the_o father_n who_o so_o strain_v the_o allegory_n on_o the_o three_o witness_n on_o earth_n to_o find_v the_o trinity_n therein_o have_v not_o also_o strain_v it_o on_o the_o word_n of_o st._n john_n to_o find_v in_o it_o their_o favourite_n doctrine_n plato_n second_o god_n if_o they_o misapply_v these_o word_n my_o heart_n have_v utter_v a_o good_a word_n and_o these_o i_o have_v beget_v thou_o in_o my_o bosom_n before_o aurora_n how_o can_v i_o be_v assure_v that_o they_o have_v not_o deceive_v i_o or_o that_o their_o infatuation_n for_o plato_n have_v not_o deceive_v themselves_o when_o they_o platonical_o interpret_v those_o other_o place_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o word_n be_v god_n and_o that_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n however_o that_o be_v it_o must_v be_v grant_v i_o that_o the_o father_n make_v no_o difficulty_n of_o seek_v sublime_a sense_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o raise_v themselves_o up_o very_o high_a above_o its_o plain_a and_o natural_a meaning_n that_o appear_v by_o the_o use_n st._n cyprian_a and_o st._n augustin_n make_v of_o the_o epistle_n general_n of_o st._n john_n now_o the_o same_o father_n have_v express_v their_o allegory_n in_o too_o absolute_a term_n without_o characterize_n they_o by_o some_o mark_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o a_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n it_o have_v in_o succeed_a time_n happen_v that_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o what_o they_o say_v have_v be_v follow_v we_o have_v see_v it_o in_o the_o example_n of_o st._n cyprian_n that_o father_n express_v himself_o absolute_o it_o be_v write_v say_v he_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o now_o that_o be_v write_v only_o of_o the_o spirit_n the_o water_n and_o the_o blood_n then_o the_o allegorical_a exposition_n have_v be_v take_v for_o a_o express_a text_n of_o scripture_n i_o strong_o suspect_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n have_v happen_v to_o that_o note_a text_n of_o st._n paul_n 1_o tim._n c._n 3._o v._n 16._o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n be_v great_a god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n
that_o the_o church_n make_v no_o difficulty_n even_o of_o tolerate_v the_o valentinian_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o they_o who_o hold_v thirty_o person_n in_o the_o deity_n and_o that_o she_o admit_v they_o into_o her_o communion_n she_o have_v more_o indulgence_n than_o i_o shall_v have_v the_o first_o christian_n say_v vossius_fw-la do_v not_o present_o cast_v heretic_n out_o of_o her_o communion_n they_o come_v not_o to_o that_o extremity_n but_o do_v it_o when_o the_o heretic_n go_v so_o far_o as_o express_o to_o contradict_v the_o christian_a faith_n as_o to_o other_o who_o do_v but_o alter_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o mix_v with_o they_o the_o gentile_a fable_n they_o deal_v not_o so_o rigorous_o with_o they_o but_o allow_v they_o some_o kind_n of_o liberty_n he_o put_v down_o valentinian_n among_o these_o last_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o thirty_o aeons_n of_o that_o heretic_n be_v tolerate_v there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o difficulty_n to_o admit_v of_o three_o hypostasis_n instead_o of_o three_o attribute_n or_o three_o modes_n these_o good_a man_n think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o accommodate_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o pagan_a philosopher_n and_o poet_n but_o rather_o a_o service_n to_o religion_n hence_o it_o be_v without_o doubt_n that_o platonism_n which_o at_o first_o serve_v she_o only_o for_o ornament_n at_o length_n become_v under_o favour_n of_o this_o toleration_n the_o very_a support_n of_o her_o mystery_n this_o bring_v to_o my_o remembrance_n a_o remark_n of_o mons_fw-la le_fw-fr clere_n in_o his_o rule_n of_o criticism_n biblioth_n vniv_n tom._n 10._o p._n 334._o which_o very_o well_o deserve_v our_o reflection_n it_o have_v so_o fall_v out_o that_o though_o there_o have_v be_v always_o in_o use_n among_o christian_n some_o certain_a term_n yet_o they_o have_v insensible_o depart_v wide_o from_o their_o idea_n which_o they_o who_o first_o use_v the_o term_n fix_v to_o they_o and_o though_o the_o word_n remain_v the_o same_o yet_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o have_v pass_v through_o divers_a revolution_n the_o phrase_n or_o expression_n be_v say_v he_o write_v in_o sensible_a character_n in_o a_o great_a many_o book_n can_v not_o suffer_v any_o great_a alteration_n but_o the_o idea_n first_o belong_v to_o those_o expression_n be_v thing_n not_o to_o be_v see_v with_o one_o eye_n and_o their_o rise_n and_o disappearance_n and_o their_o several_a change_n be_v all_o secret_a thing_n within_o the_o mind_n of_o every_o man_n and_o invisible_a to_o every_o body_n else_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o guess_v what_o have_v happen_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o equivocal_a sound_n one_o see_v on_o a_o theatre_n the_o actor_n come_v forth_o from_o behind_o the_o curtain_n in_o certain_a habit_n may_v one_o therefore_o conclude_v that_o always_o when_o one_o see_v the_o same_o habit_n they_o be_v the_o same_o actor_n who_o have_v they_o on_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o thought_n and_o the_o word_n wherein_o they_o be_v dress_v in_o these_o word_n you_o have_v a_o account_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o comedy_n our_o trinitarian_n act_n at_o this_o day_n they_o put_v on_o all_o the_o dress_n of_o the_o church_n and_o say_v with_o she_o holy_a bless_a and_o glorious_a trinity_n three_o person_n and_o one_o god_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o under_o the_o same_o word_n they_o conceive_v the_o same_o idea_n or_o that_o they_o be_v the_o same_o actor_n always_o when_o see_v in_o the_o same_o habit_n not_o at_o all_o some_o be_v sabellian_o other_o be_v rigid_a and_o other_o be_v moderate_a trinitarian_n and_o all_o together_o have_v idea_n so_o confuse_v and_o so_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o that_o it_o may_v be_v one_o shall_v not_o be_v much_o mistake_v if_o one_o say_v that_o this_o expression_n three-person_n in_o their_o mouth_n have_v as_o many_o sense_n as_o there_o be_v divine_n who_o pronounce_v 〈◊〉_d if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o six_o any_o meaning_n to_o they_o and_o that_o they_o form_n any_o idea_n about_o they_o so_o that_o although_o the_o blatonist_n and_o the_o christian_n have_v use_v these_o term_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v thereupon_o that_o they_o have_v the_o same_o idea_n nor_o that_o the_o platonist_n have_v the_o same_o among_o themselves_o nor_o that_o all_o christian_n among_o themselves_o in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n affix_v to_o the_o same_o term_n one_o constant_a uniform_a signification_n the_o present_a time_n sufficient_o show_v we_o what_o one_o ought_v to_o judge_n of_o the_o past_a the_o term_n have_v be_v always_o the_o same_o but_o they_o be_v only_o sensible_a object_n that_o be_v not_o ●_o to_o change_v but_o the_o mean_v and_o the_o idea_n be_v thing_n invisible_a which_o pass_v within_o the_o mind_n they_o may_v be_v and_o be_v change_v without_o be_v perceive_v to_o conclude_v i_o make_v this_o reflection_n only_o with_o regard_n to_o metaphysical_a term_n whereof_o we_o have_v but_o unsteady_a and_o confuse_a idea_n and_o by_o consequence_n they_o be_v liable_a to_o very_o great_a alteration_n as_o these_o idea_n do_v not_o enter_v into_o our_o mind_n without_o difficulty_n so_o they_o be_v not_o maintain_v there_o with_o a_o little_a pain_n soon_o or_o late_a they_o vanish_v and_o after_o all_o they_o can_v pass_v from_o the_o master_n mouth_n to_o the_o scholar_n ear_n without_o some_o revolution_n the_o unity_n of_o god_n be_v one_o thing_n with_o a_o jew_n and_o another_o with_o the_o trinitarian_n the_o term_n consubstantial_a with_o the_o samosatenian_o carry_v a_o different_a idea_n with_o it_o in_o the_o mind_n from_o that_o of_o the_o nicene_n father_n three_o hypostasis_n have_v one_o sense_n with_o the_o platonist_n and_o another_o with_o the_o athanasian_o one_o with_o the_o follower_n of_o arius_n and_o another_o among_o we_o and_o certain_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o alexandria_n have_v reason_n to_o give_v this_o advice_n to_o they_o at_o antioch_n in_o the_o letter_n they_o write_v to_o they_o apud_fw-la athan._n vid._n dupin_n tom._n 2._o p._n 138._o that_o they_o shall_v not_o differ_v among_o themselves_o about_o the_o hypostasis_n since_o they_o who_o own_v three_o in_o the_o trinity_n and_o they_o who_o allow_v of_o no_o more_o than_o one_o be_v both_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o differ_v only_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o expression_n we_o understand_v well_o enough_o what_o this_o mean_n the_o metaphysical_a term_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o most_o contradictory_n sense_n one_o may_v make_v they_o as_o we_o make_v the_o clock_n strike_v what_o we_o please_v if_o you_o own_o three_o hypostasis_n you_o be_v orthodox_n if_o you_o acknowledge_v but_o one_o you_o be_v still_o so_o nevertheless_o this_o term_n be_v a_o sort_n of_o prote_n be_v that_o take_v in_o all_o sense_n in_o some_o man_n mouth_n it_o signify_v the_o manner_n of_o subsist_v and_o then_o it_o be_v three_o with_o other_o it_o signify_v substance_n and_o then_o it_o be_v but_o one_o you_o see_v here_o both_o be_v sound_a to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n before_o they_o be_v aware_a alas_o i_o real_o think_v that_o i_o and_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n too_o if_o when_o she_o own_v one_o essence_n and_o three_o person_n i_o shall_v say_v on_o the_o contrary_a one_o person_n and_o three_o essence_n we_o mean_v the_o same_o thing_n it_o may_v be_v we_o express_v ourselves_o indeed_o different_o but_o after_o all_o we_o shall_v agree_v at_o the_o bottom_n it_o will_v always_o be_v three_o somewhat_n in_o one_o i_o know_v not_o what_o for_o that_o be_v all_o that_o the_o term_n essence_n and_o person_n signify_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o tripitarians_n but_o raillery_n apart_o who_o will_v nor_o pity_v st_n jerom_n who_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n epist_n ad_fw-la damasum_fw-la to_o inquire_v whether_o he_o shall_v say_v one_o hypostasis_fw-la or_o three_o hypostasis_n what!_o learned_a doctor_n must_v the_o pope_n be_v consult_v about_o that_o say_v what_o you_o please_v for_o you_o may_v with_o a_o very_a safe_a conscience_n sr._n austin_n much_o better_o understand_v the_o sense_n of_o his_o party_n as_o to_o the_o word_n person_n de_fw-la trinit_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap._n 9_o when_o say_v he_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o the_o three_o be_v human_a langnage_n be_v scanty_a and_o afford_v not_o term_n to_o express_v it_o it_o be_v therefore_o answer_v three_o person_n not_o as_o if_o that_o be_v some_o what_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o something_o must_v be_v say_v and_o one_o must_v not_o be_v silent_v to_o the_o question_n as_o for_o term_n which_o express_v thing_n that_o fall_v under_o our_o sense_n or_o action_n whereof_o we_o have_v a_o distinct_a and_o perfect_a idea_n it_o fall_v out_o quite_o otherwise_o they_o may_v
sense_n of_o contemplation_n it_o be_v moreover_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n that_o so_o many_o great_a man_n be_v say_v to_o judaize_v because_o they_o be_v for_o keep_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o natural_a and_o literal_a sense_n such_o be_v aquila_n symmachus_n theodotion_n and_o other_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o father_n who_o be_v for_o appear_v learned_a and_o will_v not_o be_v outdo_v by_o the_o gnostic_n have_v allegorize_v after_o the_o very_a manner_n of_o those_o heretic_n but_o upon_o such_o thing_n that_o have_v some_o sort_n of_o foundation_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o philosophy_n of_o those_o time_n embrace_v by_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o platonic_a party_n as_o for_o instance_n about_o the_o idea_n and_o decree_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o messiah_n about_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o messiah_n about_o the_o spirit_n that_o form_v and_o after_o sanctify_a he_o about_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v the_o preludia_fw-la of_o his_o mission_n or_o last_o about_o that_o word_n of_o god_n which_o create_v the_o world_n to_o who_o they_o ascribe_v personality_n after_o the_o platonic_a way_n the_o word_n or_o logos_fw-la may_v signify_v all_o these_o thing_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n that_o dwell_v in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o pre-existent_a soul_n the_o spirit_n that_o form_v he_o and_o the_o facility_n with_o which_o he_o wrought_v so_o many_o miracle_n only_o as_o it_o be_v at_o the_o expense_n of_o a_o word_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o jew_n have_v allegorize_v upon_o the_o seven_o thing_n that_o they_o say_v be_v create_v before_o the_o world_n among_o which_o they_o count_v the_o name_n or_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o say_v the_o truth_n the_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o father_n very_a often_o vary_n for_o at_o one_o time_n they_o be_v for_o conceal_v the_o sublime_a part_n of_o their_o mystery_n that_o they_o may_v give_v offence_n to_o some_o sturdy_a mind_n that_o will_v not_o so_o ready_o give_v way_n to_o mystical_a notion_n at_o other_o time_n they_o pass_v over_o the_o plain_a part_n of_o religion_n to_o gain_v upon_o their_o speculative_a gentleman_n who_o admire_v chief_o what_o we_o call_v the_o wonderful_a but_o however_o they_o be_v always_o constant_a in_o pursue_v this_o design_n of_o their_o oeconomy_n and_o rule_n of_o prudence_n in_o adapt_a themselves_o to_o the_o genius_n and_o relish_v of_o every_o body_n in_o make_v mystery_n of_o every_o thing_n to_o beget_v in_o their_o scholar_n a_o veneration_n for_o their_o opinion_n when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o '_o they_o and_o further_o they_o take_v care_n to_o distinguish_v between_o those_o opinion_n which_o be_v transmit_v to_o they_o by_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o which_o come_v from_o the_o same_o apostle_n by_o tradition_n only_o and_o in_o mystery_n as_o st._n basil_n speak_v lib._n de_fw-la spir._n s._n ad_fw-la amphil._n cap._n 27._o that_o be_v by_o the_o way_n of_o secret_a discipline_n and_o instruction_n clemens_n of_o alexandria_n make_v mention_n of_o these_o last_o opinion_n stromat_n 5._o p._n 576._o and_o call_v they_o the_o lesson_n of_o the_o perfect_a which_o consist_v in_o certain_a spiritual_a and_o sublime_a sense_n which_o be_v deliver_v viuâ_fw-la voce_fw-mi and_o by_o tradition_n but_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o set_v they_o down_o in_o their_o epistle_n this_o expedient_a of_o setret_n tradition_n open_v a_o wide_a field_n for_o philosophize_v according_a to_o their_o humour_n and_o be_v adapt_v to_o the_o purpose_n of_o introduce_v new_a opinion_n into_o religion_n we_o must_v be_v upon_o our_o guard_n when_o we_o be_v read_v their_o write_n and_o take_v very_o little_a of_o they_o in_o the_o literal_a sense_n where_o every_o thing_n almost_o be_v allegorical_a and_o they_o be_v throout_a pursue_v what_o we_o call_v the_o wonderful_a it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o the_o protestant_n that_o the_o declamation_n and_o apostrophe_n of_o the_o father_n have_v give_v birth_n to_o some_o error_n and_o the_o idolatry_n practise_v at_o this_o day_n they_o know_v well_o enough_o how_o to_o account_v for_o the_o hyperbolical_a exposition_n of_o the_o ancient_n upon_o the_o eucharist_n as_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v offer_v upon_o a_o altar_n that_o he_o be_v slay_v strangle_v extend_v die_v carry_v bury_v etc._n etc._n and_o these_o ridiculous_a apostrophe_n o_o great_a and_o sacred_a passover_n the_o purgation_n of_o our_o sin_n etc._n etc._n greg._n naz._n o_o divine_a and_o sacred_a mystery_n vouchsase_v to_o remove_v the_o veil_n wherewith_o we_o be_v encompass_v and_o manifest_v yourself_o clear_o to_o we_o by_o enlighten_v with_o your_o brightness_n the_o eye_n of_o our_o mind_n see_v counterseit_n denis_n these_o apostrophe_n seem_v to_o deify_v the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o make_v it_o a_o person_n why_o shall_v we_o not_o acknowledge_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o the_o overcurious_a platonism_n of_o the_o same_o father_n have_v lead_v they_o into_o those_o extravagant_a description_n whereby_o they_o have_v make_v a_o second_o god_n a_o person_n of_o the_o word_n or_o logos_fw-la a_o son_n beget_v before_o age_n and_o incarnate_a in_o time_n mystery_n no_o less_o strange_a than_o that_o of_o transubstantiation_n who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o speak_v magnificent_o of_o every_o thing_n they_o ascribe_v a_o divine_a and_o extraordinary_a virtue_n to_o the_o oil_n and_o the_o cream_n they_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v change_v and_o transform_v they_o by_o a_o divine_a emcacy_n they_o have_v say_v no_o less_o of_o baptism_n for_o they_o believe_v the_o divinity_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v and_o insinuate_a itself_o into_o the_o water_n use_v in_o that_o sacrament_n impart_v to_o it_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o regenerate_v they_o allow_v that_o the_o eucharist_n show_v a_o divine_a and_o quicken_a virtue_n emanate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o incarnate_a word_n the_o word_n according_a to_o they_o be_v a_o emanation_n from_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v hypostatical_o unite_v to_o the_o word_n the_o bread_n be_v hypostatical_o unite_v to_o that_o divine_a body_n and_o consequent_o have_v the_o quicken_a virtue_n of_o the_o word_n they_o own_o a_o twofold_a emanation_n the_o word_n be_v the_o emanation_n of_o god_n and_o the_o quicken_a virtue_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v a_o emanation_n of_o the_o word_n and_o they_o hold_v a_o twofold_a incarnation_n one_o of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o another_o of_o the_o quicken_a virtue_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v a_o system_n of_o policy_n well_o contrive_v whereby_o these_o cunning_a doctor_n bring_v nothing_o less_o than_o divinity_n into_o every_o thing_n and_o speak_v with_o advantage_n upon_o the_o mean_a subject_n to_o make_v they_o look_v mysterious_a and_o venerable_a it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o they_o as_o have_v be_v observe_v of_o those_o who_o make_v canon_n in_o council_n that_o they_o speak_v more_o than_o they_o mean_v so_o that_o many_o age_n after_o mystery_n be_v discover_v in_o their_o expression_n which_o they_o never_o dream_v of_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o nothing_o so_o like_o that_o as_o these_o two_o apostrophe_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n chant_v in_o her_o liturgy_n one_o be_v address_v to_o the_o trinity_n o_o holy_a bless_a and_o glorious_a trinity_n three_o person_n and_o one_o god_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o miserable_a sinner_n the_o other_o be_v address_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n o_o cross_n my_o only_a hope_n i_o salute_v thou_o at_o this_o time_n of_o the_o passion_n increase_v the_o righteousness_n of_o good_a man_n and_o pardon_v the_o crime_n of_o the_o wicked_a here_o you_o have_v two_o saint_n which_o one_o and_o the_o same_o superstition_n have_v canonize_v two_o prayer_n cast_v in_o the_o same_o mould_n for_o both_o one_o and_o tother_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o idolatry_n and_o of_o false_a eloquence_n upon_o which_o i_o will_v make_v this_o observation_n that_o it_o have_v fall_v out_o with_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o these_o primitive_a father_n as_o it_o have_v with_o the_o admirer_n of_o episcopacy_n here_o in_o england_n who_o have_v retain_v a_o liturgy_n and_o divers_a ceremony_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v over_o the_o more_o papist_n to_o their_o communion_n yet_o they_o still_o continue_v to_o look_v upon_o those_o thing_n at_o this_o time_n in_o a_o sort_n necessary_a to_o religion_n although_o there_o be_v now_o no_o more_o occasion_n for_o that_o reason_n of_o prudence_n and_o even_o as_o great_a a_o reason_n of_o charity_n and_o a_o second_o reason_n of_o prudence_n shall_v oblige_v they_o to_o relax_v or_o lay_v they_o by_o to_o gain_v the_o nonconformist_n it_o be_v the_o same_o case_n with_o the_o allegorical_a
their_o profound_a speculation_n for_o to_o theologize_v according_a to_o they_o be_v not_o only_o to_o speak_v of_o god_n and_o his_o attribute_n but_o of_o angel_n too_o of_o aeons_n of_o idea_n of_o emanation_n and_o in_o a_o word_n of_o every_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o intelligible_a world_n of_o the_o platonist_n theology_n be_v a_o term_n affect_v by_o all_o the_o contemplative_a gentleman_n whether_o orthodox_n or_o gnostic_n these_o sort_n of_o folk_n do_v not_o regard_v the_o fact_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o prove_v its_o divine_a authority_n any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o grosser_n proof_n proper_a for_o vulgar_a weak_a mind_n but_o for_o contemplation_n the_o case_n be_v quite_o otherwise_o this_o they_o think_v a_o noble_a and_o powerful_a medium_fw-la by_o which_o soul_n of_o the_o first_o rank_n elevate_v themselves_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o noble_a truth_n yet_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o found_v upon_o any_o thing_n but_o fact_n and_o the_o chief_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v certain_a fact_n contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v it_o not_o therefore_o a_o put_v the_o gospel_n upon_o another_o foot_n if_o we_o carry_v on_o our_o contemplation_n to_o abstraction_n and_o the_o idea_n of_o a_o crude_a chimerical_a metaphysic_n it_o be_v a_o extravagant_a system_n if_o instead_o of_o fact_n well_o prove_v and_o right_o circumstance_v there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v but_o a_o mere_a operation_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o a_o ens_fw-la rationis_fw-la which_o these_o gentleman_n be_v please_v to_o call_v the_o word_n or_o the_o son_n theologise_v that_o great_a man_n mons_fw-la jurieu_o who_o god_n be_v please_v to_o favour_n with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o every_o thing_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o set_v aside_o this_o false_a theology_n of_o the_o father_n 7_o ler._n past_a de_fw-fr la_fw-fr 3_o année_fw-fr beside_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o vulgar_a say_v he_o which_o be_v immediate_o found_v upon_o the_o sacred_a write_n the_o doctor_n frame_v a_o theology_n that_o be_v they_o undertake_v to_o expound_v the_o mystery_n in_o a_o sense_n beyond_o that_o wherein_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o have_v deliver_v they_o and_o it_o be_v in_o that_o they_o have_v disagree_v and_o one_o must_v not_o wonder_v at_o it_o because_o the_o thing_n they_o go_v about_o to_o explain_v be_v profound_a and_o it_o may_v be_v inexplicable_a and_o because_o they_o make_v use_v of_o a_o false_a philosophy_n which_o they_o bring_v into_o their_o theology_n and_o by_o so_o do_v they_o have_v ruin_v theology_n and_o at_o last_o religion_n in_o all_o age_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_n therefore_o must_v not_o be_v condemn_v as_o if_o it_o be_v change_v although_o they_o disagree_v in_o their_o theology_n and_o it_o must_v be_v note_v that_o this_o theology_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n shall_v not_o be_v form_v out_o of_o theological_a exposition_n be_v not_o this_o much_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o theology_n of_o the_o ancient_n according_a to_o mons_fw-la jurieu_o these_o good_a doctor_n can_v not_o theologize_v the_o son_n without_o hazard_v the_o faith_n and_o consequent_o one_o ought_v not_o to_o receive_v among_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n their_o theological_a explication_n concern_v a_o son_n beget_v and_o not_o make_v a_o internal_a word_n and_o a_o word_n bring_v forth_o etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o father_n consider_v the_o theological_a sense_n not_o only_o as_o true_a but_o as_o that_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v chief_o in_o its_o view_n so_o that_o they_o who_o will_v impose_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o theological_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n because_o the_o father_n urge_v it_o be_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o receive_v all_o the_o other_o theological_a sense_n which_o the_o same_o father_n have_v give_v to_o so_o many_o other_o term_n in_o scripture_n and_o which_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v no_o less_o the_o purport_n and_o design_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o do_v but_o they_o be_v look_v upon_o even_o as_o ridiculous_a why_o therefore_o be_v it_o not_o acknowledge_v bona_fw-la fide_fw-la also_o that_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o logos_fw-la or_o word_n be_v one_o of_o those_o wretched_a allegory_n so_o much_o declaim_v against_o at_o that_o day_n and_o a_o article_n of_o that_o false_a theology_n which_o be_v incompatible_a with_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o let_v we_o pay_v as_o much_o respect_n to_o the_o father_n as_o we_o can_v let_v we_o preserve_v their_o theology_n be_v it_o so_o provide_v that_o the_o theological_a sense_n be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v design_v for_o any_o other_o than_o contemplative_a and_o seraphic_a mind_n and_o that_o no_o more_o than_o the_o faith_n or_o belief_n of_o the_o plain_a natural_a sense_n be_v require_v of_o man_n as_o man_n origen_n be_v too_o fair_a to_o desire_v more_o than_o this_o he_o acquaint_v his_o reader_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o sacred_a writer_n do_v not_o concern_v themselves_o with_o abstruse_a matter_n and_o speculative_a subject_n which_o few_o of_o they_o who_o they_o call_v to_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v capable_a of_o understanding_n but_o confine_v themselves_o to_o those_o few_o clear_a article_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o bring_v they_o into_o a_o state_n of_o righteousness_n and_o give_v they_o hope_n of_o immortality_n leave_v the_o more_o refine_a contemplation_n which_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o prime_a truth_n to_o the_o commendable_a curiosity_n of_o those_o who_o nature_n and_o education_n have_v qualify_v for_o such_o inquiry_n dr._n rust_n in_o his_o discourse_n of_o origen_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o his_o opinion_n have_v observe_v also_o that_o there_o be_v necessary_a truth_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v clear_o teach_v and_o the_o church_n receive_v the_o contrary_a whereto_o can_v be_v receive_v without_o retrench_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o religion_n but_o that_o there_o be_v beside_o some_o contemplation_n about_o which_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o determine_v any_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o truth_n as_o to_o these_o matter_n be_v purposely_o conceal_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o origen_n think_v to_o excite_v their_o study_n and_o industry_n who_o be_v lover_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o the_o discovery_n of_o so_o great_a a_o treasure_n may_v be_v a_o recompense_n for_o their_o pious_a inquiry_n without_o doubt_v all_o the_o other_o father_n agree_v in_o this_o very_a principle_n with_o origen_n that_o the_o contemplative_a subject_n be_v not_o necessary_a nor_o essential_a to_o religion_n that_o they_o do_v not_o oblige_v ordinary_a christian_n and_o that_o they_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o commendable_a inquiry_n of_o the_o curious_a servetus_n who_o constant_o imitate_v the_o father_n agree_v in_o this_o though_o he_o be_v in_o other_o respect_v a_o great_a admirer_n of_o platonism_n and_o contemplation_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la lib._n 2._o p._n 50._o do_v not_o rash_o publish_v this_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v after_o several_a essay_n and_o have_v fast_v and_o pray_v that_o st._n john_n pronounce_v these_o word_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n or_o the_o messiah_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n the_o common_a people_n be_v justify_v by_o this_o faith_n alone_o although_o they_o do_v not_o exact_o know_v his_o divinity_n you_o therefore_o pious_a reader_n who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v the_o manner_n of_o his_o generation_n nor_o the_o whole_a fullness_n of_o his_o divinity_n always_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n beget_v of_o god_n and_o thy_o saviour_n this_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n you_o shall_v believe_v that_o you_o may_v live_v by_o he_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v origen_n speak_v for_o himself_o it_o be_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o st._n john_n that_o one_o shall_v find_v the_o famous_a distinction_n he_o make_v between_o the_o intelligible_a and_o the_o sensible_a gospel_n and_o how_o he_o there_o divide_v christian_n into_o two_o class_n the_o one_o of_o those_o who_o be_v child_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o other_o of_o those_o intelligent_a and_o elevate_a mind_n who_o be_v capable_a of_o understand_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o glorify_a god_n that_o doctor_n or_o teacher_n say_v he_o who_o be_v willing_a to_o profit_v all_o person_n can_v however_o make_v the_o secret_a and_o sublime_a christianity_n know_v to_o such_o who_o can_v only_o understand_v the_o plain_a and_o the_o reveal_v christianity_n wherefore_o
because_o they_o have_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v surprise_v and_o their_o eye_n to_o be_v dazzle_v with_o cheir_a platonic_a philosophy_n the_o wonderful_a and_o the_o sublime_a be_v very_a tempt_a scheme_n these_o platonist_n be_v a_o sort_n of_o philosopher_n or_o rather_o of_o divine_n who_o have_v make_v a_o voyage_n to_o the_o world_n of_o idea_n and_o some_o christian_n be_v so_o weak_a as_o to_o swallow_v all_o their_o vision_n for_o mystery_n but_o let_v we_o always_o remember_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o father_n that_o how_o far_o soever_o they_o wander_v in_o their_o large_a field_n of_o platonic_a contemplation_n they_o never_o advance_v so_o far_o as_o to_o equal_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o word_n with_o that_o of_o his_o father_n origen_n who_o be_v one_o of_o they_o that_o go_v far_a never_o carry_v his_o theology_n to_o that_o extreme_a whatever_o lofty_a idea_n he_o have_v of_o the_o son_n he_o declare_v however_o in_o his_o 14_o tome_n on_o st._n john_n that_o the_o son_n be_v so_o much_o below_o the_o father_n as_o he_o and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v above_o the_o most_o noble_a creature_n go_v we_o now_o after_o this_o and_o say_v that_o the_o father_n hold_v the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v that_o the_o supreme_a god_n be_v incarnate_a and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v that_o supreme_a god_n monsieur_n huet_n have_v good_a reason_n to_o acknowledge_v upon_o this_o passage_n of_o origen_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v excuse_v and_o to_o attempt_v to_o find_v a_o orthodox_n sense_n in_o it_o can_v not_o be_v consistent_a with_o sincerity_n or_o honesty_n chap._n vii_o the_o same_o proof_n continue_v together_o with_o a_o examination_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o ancient_a creed_n thereupon_o we_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v but_o to_o consider_v the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o to_o compare_v those_o which_o be_v form_v upon_o the_o apostolic_a theology_n with_o such_o as_o be_v frame_v according_a to_o the_o platenick_n scheme_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o these_o latter_a that_o the_o article_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o his_o incarnation_n come_v in_o the_o room_n of_o that_o of_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o former_a creed_n the_o universal_a church_n say_v irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o have_v receive_v this_o faith_n from_o the_o holy_a apostle_n which_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n the_o father_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n incarnate_a for_o our_o salvation_n etc._n etc._n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o very_a creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n except_v the_o word_n incarnate_a but_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o very_a place_n of_o those_o other_o word_n conceive_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n which_o be_v want_v in_o this_o creed_n of_o irenaeus_n he_o will_v say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n unite_v itself_o to_o real_a and_o not_o to_o celestial_a and_o aerial_a flesh_n as_o some_o heretic_n imagine_v the_o turn_n be_v somewhat_o platonize_a but_o after_o all_o he_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o advance_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n since_o he_o dispute_v against_o those_o man_n who_o hold_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v pure_a spirit_n clothe_v with_o celestial_a flesh_n and_o he_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n suppose_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o real_a man_n true_a flesh_n animate_v with_o a_o divine_a spirit_n a_o man_n bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n true_o bear_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o woman_n although_o form_v by_o the_o power_n of_o a_o spirit_n tertullian_n in_o one_o of_o his_o tract_n the_o veland_n virg._n in_o initio_fw-la have_v give_v we_o this_o plain_a rule_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o call_v the_o immutable_a and_o unchangeable_a rule_n to_o this_o purpose_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v in_o one_o god_n alone_o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n etc._n etc._n in_o another_o tract_n the_o praescrip_n adv_fw-la haeres_fw-la present_v you_o with_o another_o rule_n of_o the_o platonize_a faith_n which_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o same_o word_n by_o which_o god_n create_v the_o world_n speak_v to_o the_o patriarch_n and_o inspire_v the_o prophet_n come_v forth_o from_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n it_o light_v upon_o the_o virgin_n and_o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o wrought_v in_o j.c._n all_o sort_n of_o miracle_n have_v he_o forget_v that_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v change_v or_o reform_v no_o without_o doubt_n he_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o change_v any_o thing_n but_o only_o give_v the_o ancient_a opinion_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o j._n c._n in_o platonic_a style_n in_o philosophic_a jargon_n or_o to_o speak_v better_a he_o substitute_n a_o allegory_n manage_v with_o force_n and_o violence_n in_o the_o room_n of_o this_o evangelical_n expression_n bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v plain_a and_o literal_a this_o spirit_n as_o tertullian_n say_v be_v a_o emanation_n from_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n may_v be_v say_v in_o a_o mystic_a and_o sublime_a sense_n to_o be_v the_o same_o spirit_n who_o create_v the_o world_n and_o inspire_v the_o prophet_n st._n cyril_n in_o his_o catecheses_n explain_v a_o creed_n pure_o arian_n which_o dr._n bull_n pretend_v to_o be_v the_o ancient_a creed_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n i_o believe_v it_o say_v in_o one_o god_n the_o father_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n before_o age_n true_a god_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v incarnate_a and_o make_v man_n etc._n etc._n i_o say_v this_o creed_n be_v arian_n for_o it_o be_v express_v in_o the_o same_o term_n as_o all_o the_o arian_n confession_n that_o be_v now_o extant_a and_o if_o the_o doctor_n pretend_v that_o it_o be_v orthodox_n at_o the_o best_a hand_n it_o can_v pass_v for_o no_o more_o than_o the_o creed_n of_o constantinople_n as_o monfieur_fw-fr le_fw-fr vassor_n have_v observe_v traité_n the_o 〈◊〉_d examen_fw-la ch_n 6._o p._n 226._o this_o creed_n of_o st._n cyril_n say_v he_o be_v almost_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o constantinople_n especial_o in_o the_o article_n concern_v the_o holy_a spirit_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o catecheses_n we_o have_v be_v those_o which_o cyril_n make_v in_o his_o youth_n as_o st._n jerom_n report_v it_o this_o prelate_n review_v and_o augment_v they_o after_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n who_o creed_n he_o explain_v almost_o word_n for_o word_n in_o this_o case_n it_o will_v not_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o article_n concern_v the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o jerusalem_n cyril_n may_v have_v add_v it_o to_o his_o catecheses_n after_o the_o synod_n if_o this_o conjecture_n hold_v as_o to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n much_o more_o will_v it_o do_v so_o as_o to_o the_o platonic_a word_n we_o can_v but_o say_v in_o this_o case_n it_o will_v not_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o article_n concern_v a_o son_n beget_v before_o age_n be_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o jerusalem_n cyril_n may_v add_v to_o his_o catecheses_n after_o the_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n let_v we_o join_v with_o this_o learned_a proselyte_n the_o famous_a mons_fw-la du_fw-fr pin_n who_o in_o his_o second_n tom._n of_o his_o bibliotheque_fw-fr p._n 413._o inunuate_v the_o novelty_n of_o cyril_n creed_n upon_o this_o account_n 1._o that_o it_o have_v the_o article_n of_o life_n everlasting_a which_o be_v not_o in_o all_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o in_o his_o 1_o tom._n paris_n edit_n p._n 30._o he_o say_v that_o cyril_n in_o his_o catecheses_n make_n a_o particular_a creed_n which_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n use_v at_o the_o time_n that_o this_o father_n write_v his_o catecheses_n that_o those_o who_o have_v make_v commentary_n upon_o the_o creed_n have_v omit_v among_o other_o these_o word_n life_n everlasting_a and_o that_o st._n jerom_n observe_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o pammachius_n that_o the_o creed_n end_v with_o these_o word_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n these_o word_n of_o du_fw-fr pin_n be_v remarkable_a he_o say_v cyril_n make_v a_o creed_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o he_o and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n till_o the_o time_n when_o this_o father_n write_v for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o word_n in_o a_o author_n that_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o ancient_a but_o however_o
ghost_n as_o to_o their_o nature_n and_o person_n as_o we_o speak_v i_o say_v those_o three_o article_n whereupon_o we_o dispute_v be_v very_o ancient_a it_o be_v true_a the_o ancient_a formulas_fw-la of_o faith_n contain_v scarce_o any_o thing_n beside_o these_o which_o be_v a_o exposition_n of_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n but_o then_o it_o be_v of_o these_o only_o we_o be_v debate_v yea_o the_o liturgy_n ascribe_v to_o st._n james_n and_o the_o oriental_a creed_n of_o russinus_n give_v we_o these_o article_n in_o the_o proper_a word_n of_o scripture_n clean_o of_o all_o platonism_n be_v not_o such_o a_o piece_n of_o antiquity_n more_o primitive_a and_o even_o antecedent_n to_o cyril_n and_o all_o the_o platonic_a father_n but_o this_o creed_n say_v dr._n bull_n whatever_o simplicity_n it_o have_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o extent_n or_o latitude_n the_o platonize_a father_n take_v it_o in_o who_o make_v it_o always_o suppose_v as_o you_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o make_v till_o since_o the_o church_n expound_v in_o her_o large_a creed_n her_o platonic_a faith_n i_o will_v turn_v this_o manner_n of_o reason_v upon_o he_o and_o say_v that_o suppose_v on_o the_o contrary_a the_o ancient_a liturgy_n have_v this_o creed_n in_o the_o simplicity_n wherein_o we_o have_v it_o at_o this_o time_n it_o can_v be_v understand_v but_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o nazarene_n disciple_n of_o st._n james_n who_o most_o certain_o do_v not_o platonize_v as_o indeed_o we_o have_v prove_v platonism_n owe_v not_o its_o rise_n to_o the_o jewish_a but_o to_o the_o gentile_a convert_v and_o such_o gentile_n too_o as_o be_v follower_n of_o plato_n true_a orthodoxy_n at_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o christianity_n consist_v in_o believe_v that_o j._n c._n be_v beget_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o consequent_o be_v of_o a_o celestial_a race_n or_o origin_n that_o he_o have_v a_o sort_n of_o pre-existence_n in_o this_o h._n spirit_n of_o power_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o and_o that_o upon_o these_o account_n he_o be_v real_o and_o in_o the_o letter_n the_o proper_a and_o only_a son_n of_o god_n a_o doctrine_n which_o the_o disciple_n of_o st._n james_n maintain_v against_o the_o cerinthian_o and_o ebionite_n there_o be_v no_o other_o controversy_n than_o concern_v the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o which_o reason_n the_o creed_n of_o marcellus_n say_v bare_o that_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n be_v beget_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o a_o virgin_n and_o not_o beget_v before_o age_n which_o may_v have_v be_v say_v with_o as_o much_o ease_n as_o other_o and_o must_v necessary_o have_v be_v say_v if_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o creed_n have_v be_v that_o only_a son_n signify_v beget_v from_o all_o eternity_n but_o after_o all_o what_o will_v the_o doctor_n say_v with_o his_o interpretation_n and_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o ancient_a creed_n i_o have_v observe_v in_o divers_a passage_n of_o his_o write_n that_o he_o require_v too_o much_o to_o be_v grant_v he_o for_o instance_n he_o will_v have_v it_o in_o his_o judic_n eccles_n p._n 141._o that_o this_o elegy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o creed_n of_o constantinople_n the_o live_a lord_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n who_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o glorify_v with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o this_o magnificent_a elegy_n be_v a_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n paraclet_n in_o the_o creed_n of_o cyril_n wonderful_a paraphrase_n strange_a interpretation_n that_o the_o paraclet_n shall_v signify_v all_o these_o fine_a thing_n the_o live_a lord_n proceed_n from_o the_o father_n who_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o glorify_v with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n well!_o after_o this_o do_v we_o think_v the_o doctor_n do_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v believe_v when_o he_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o son_n beget_v before_o age_n the_o true_a god_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n with_o the_o good_a leave_n of_o this_o commentary-maker_n it_o be_v more_o natural_a to_o believe_v in_o adhere_v to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o ancient_a creed_n that_o beget_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o a_o virgin_n be_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o the_o right_a exposition_n in_o fine_a this_o pure_a simple_a creed_n be_v not_o frame_v by_o a_o cabal_n a_o party_n as_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o constantinople_n be_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o know_v if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v whence_o it_o come_v it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v fall_v down_o from_o heaven_n it_o be_v the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o it_o be_v this_o suffrage_n that_o have_v save_v the_o church_n from_o shipwreck_n and_o gain_v her_o reverence_n ruffinus_n in_o his_o expos_n symb._n make_v no_o scruple_n to_o say_v that_o this_o creed_n be_v establish_v to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o distinction_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v know_v who_o preach_v j._n c._n true_o according_a to_o apostolic_a rule_n but_o it_o be_v proper_a i_o shall_v here_o transcribe_v a_o fine_a passage_n out_o of_o dr._n hammond_n upon_o this_o subject_a in_o his_o discourse_n of_o fundamental_a point_n chap._n 8._o say_v he_o this_o creed_n be_v the_o very_a badge_n and_o livery_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o abridgement_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n for_o although_o in_o their_o epistle_n write_v to_o such_o as_o be_v already_o christian_n one_o find_v no_o one_o complete_a catalogue_n of_o these_o article_n which_o they_o teach_v every_o where_o because_o they_o suppose_v they_o sufficient_o know_v yet_o however_o the_o most_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n assure_v we_o that_o in_o all_o place_n where_o the_o apostle_n go_v to_o plant_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n they_o publish_v there_o distinct_o and_o leave_v there_o all_o these_o article_n which_o serve_v for_o a_o foundation_n to_o the_o christian_a life_n and_o it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v the_o summary_n of_o these_o f●●●damental_a article_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o before_o the_o nicene_n creed_n be_v make_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n use_v this_o formulary_a of_o faith_n which_o they_o receive_v from_o their_o ancestor_n and_o they_o from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o see_v irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o &_o lib._n 3._o c._n 4._o and_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o room_n to_o doubt_n but_o this_o be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o that_o we_o at_o this_o day_n call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n marcellus_n give_v we_o a_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n which_o he_o say_v he_o receive_v from_o his_o predecessor_n which_o be_v find_v to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o our_o apostle_n creed_n see_v epiphan_n haer._n 72._o what_o i_o be_o say_v may_v be_v confirm_v by_o this_o observation_n of_o st._n austin_n in_o his_o discourse_n de_fw-fr bapt._n contr_n donat._n cap._n 24._o viz._n that_o it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o what_o have_v general_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v always_o be_v hold_v by_o it_o without_o be_v institute_v by_o any_o council_n come_v to_o we_o from_o apostolic_a tradition_n also_o tertullian_n de_fw-fr veland_n virg._n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n say_v he_o be_v one_o and_o immutable_a etc._n etc._n that_o this_o abridgement_n of_o our_o creed_n give_v we_o by_o tertullian_n be_v one_o and_o immutable_a can_v be_v from_o no_o other_o cause_o but_o from_o its_o apostolic_a origin_n which_o alone_o ought_v to_o pretend_v to_o that_o privilege_n for_o this_o reason_n the_o same_o father_n say_v elsewhere_o contr_n prax._n cap._n 2._o this_o rule_n come_v down_o to_o we_o from_o the_o very_a first_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v true_a the_o controversy_n that_o the_o platonize_a christian_n have_v at_o first_o with_o the_o christian_n of_o judea_n make_v the_o church_n when_o in_o power_n despise_v this_o creed_n which_o favour_v its_o adversary_n so_o that_o it_o but_o rare_o appear_v in_o its_o simplicity_n but_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n clog_v and_o blend_v with_o platonism_n but_o in_o the_o four_o century_n the_o dispute_n be_v only_o between_o the_o athanasian_o and_o the_o arian_n both_o good_a platonist_n hold_v the_o pre-existence_n this_o creed_n be_v receive_v for_o it_o oppose_v one_o no_o more_o than_o tother_o and_o neither_o of_o these_o two_o party_n have_v then_o prevail_v over_o one_o another_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v it_o always_o her_o creed_n for_o the_o platonic_a controversy_n be_v not_o so_o warm_a there_o as_o in_o the_o east_n but_o dr._n bull_n will_v return_v to_o the_o charge_n and_o tell_v we_o as_o he_o have_v do_v more_o than_o once_o that_o to_o
testimony_n every_o one_o frame_n for_o himself_o a_o idea_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n according_a to_o his_o particular_a judgement_n of_o thing_n suppose_v therefore_o that_o this_o ancient_a author_n believe_v as_o the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n of_o his_o time_n be_v that_o j._n c._n be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o joseph_n and_o mary_n and_o suppose_v on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v none_o other_o theology_n of_o his_o birth_n than_o this_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o virgin_n mary_n hegesippus_n may_v very_o well_o say_v the_o nazarene_n bishop_n be_v sound_a in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o person_n of_o j._n c._n without_o any_o ground_n for_o conclude_v thence_o that_o they_o hold_v the_o platonic_a faith_n and_o be_v of_o eusebius_n his_o judgement_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o they_o be_v not_o engage_v in_o the_o error_n of_o the_o ebionite_n because_o they_o be_v orthodox_n to_o explain_v this_o by_o a_o example_n let_v we_o suppose_v that_o eusebius_n have_v say_v of_o some_o arian_n eishop_n that_o his_o faith_n be_v sound_a as_o to_o the_o person_n of_o j.c._n can_v the_o doctor_n and_o his_o friend_n thence_o conclude_v that_o this_o bishop_n believe_v the_o consubstantiality_n and_o equality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n by_o no_o mean_n all_o they_o can_v hence_o infer_v be_v that_o the_o bishop_n believe_v the_o platonic_a pre-existence_n which_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n according_a to_o eusebius_n who_o believe_v neither_o the_o consubstantiality_n nor_o the_o equality_n etc._n etc._n we_o ought_v to_o reason_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n from_o the_o word_n of_o heg●sippus_n who_o hold_v that_o for_o a_o sound_a faith_n which_o eusebius_n will_v have_v call_v impious_a if_o he_o have_v know_v it_o as_o the_o doctor_n will_v that_o which_o eusebius_n think_v sound_v who_o do_v not_o know_v that_o those_o very_a person_n who_o hold_v the_o orthodox_n faith_n of_o the_o first_o age_n i_o mean_v that_o of_o the_o miraculous_a birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v account_v impious_a in_o the_o time_n of_o eusebius_n because_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o notion_n of_o the_o platonic_a word_n and_o the_o modish_a philosophy_n of_o a_o eternal_a generation_n that_o be_v rash_o superinduce_v or_o bring_v in_o the_o room_n of_o a_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o a_o generation_n in_o time_n of_o mary_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o be_v of_o a_o woman_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o they_o have_v another_o theology_n for_o the_o better_a demonstration_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n that_o chap._n x._o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n or_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o ancient_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n i_o shall_v last_o consider_v that_o the_o word_n among_o the_o ancient_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o evangelist_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o platonize_a writer_n themselves_o lead_v by_o a_o ancient_a tradition_n the_o footstep_n whereof_o remain_v a_o long_a time_n have_v confound_v these_o two_o term_n have_v often_o use_v they_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o signification_n a_o evident_a proof_n that_o the_o philosophy_n of_o the_o platonic_a word_n owe_v its_o birth_n to_o allegory_n make_v upon_o that_o divine_a power_n which_o overshadow_a the_o bless_a virgin_n which_o power_n may_v be_v indifferent_o call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o the_o word_n but_o as_o the_o latter_a term_n be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o plato_n so_o it_o be_v more_a frequent_o use_v so_o that_o at_o last_o this_o conformity_n of_o term_n bring_v the_o platonic_a father_n to_o a_o conformity_n in_o doctrine_n with_o plato_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o fall_v into_o two_o error_n direct_o opposite_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n one_o in_o that_o they_o have_v make_v of_o a_o power_n or_o a_o mere_a operation_n a_o hypostasis_fw-la the_o other_o in_o that_o they_o have_v make_v two_o hypostasis_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o at_o the_o bottom_n be_v but_o two_o diverse_a operation_n where_o therefore_o they_o make_v two_o hypostasis_n of_o these_o two_o operation_n they_o follow_v their_o own_o philosophy_n but_o when_o they_o confound_v these_o operation_n they_o build_v without_o question_n upon_o this_o passage_n of_o david_n which_o say_v the_o heaven_n be_v make_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n where_o the_o word_n and_o breath_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v put_v together_o as_o thing_n inseparable_a which_o differ_v not_o in_o effect_n only_o in_o this_o that_o the_o breath_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o tertullian_n adv_n prax._n i_o shall_v pass_v over_o hermas_n who_o in_o his_o 5_o &_o 9th_o similitude_n say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v thus_o but_o in_o parable_n for_o which_o reason_n his_o testimony_n will_v be_v of_o no_o use_n but_o to_o serve_v for_o a_o illusion_n and_o i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o more_o of_o ignatius_n who_o salute_v the_o church_n at_o smyrna_n in_o the_o inscription_n of_o his_o epistle_n with_o these_o word_n the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v by_o or_o through_o he_o who_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o passage_n be_v not_o very_o exact_a or_o clear_a so_o as_o to_o perceive_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o author_n and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o draw_v from_o it_o a_o convince_a proof_n les_fw-fr u_fw-mi begin_v therefore_o with_o justin_n martyr_n he_o in_o his_o 2d_o apol._n p._n 74_o etc._n etc._n have_v style_v jesus_n christ_n the_o first_o and_o principal_a power_n the_o son_n and_o the_o word_n who_o have_v not_o his_o birth_n from_o man_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n he_o come_v afterward_o to_o examine_v the_o passage_n in_o st._n luke_n the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v over_o shadow_n thou_o etc._n etc._n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o spirit_n say_v he_o and_o the_o power_n which_o come_v from_o god_n we_o ought_v to_o understand_v nothing_o but_o the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o first-born_a of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n what_o word_n he_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o add_v all_o in_o one_o breath_n that_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n which_o inspire_v the_o prophet_n and_o which_o speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o prophet_n or_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n or_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n or_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o people_n here_o be_v no_o difficulty_n either_o he_o have_v say_v nothing_o or_o he_o have_v formal_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o inspire_v the_o prophet_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o most_o high_a of_o which_o st._n luke_n speak_v and_o the_o word_n in_o st._n john_n be_v all_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n after_o a_o testimony_n so_o express_v i_o have_v no_o need_n to_o heap_v up_o other_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o this_o father_n wherein_o we_o may_v in_o part_n discover_v the_o same_o truth_n as_o when_o in_o his_o dialogue_n with_o trypho_n p._n 327._o he_o make_v a_o opposition_n between_o the_o word_n of_o the_o serpent_n by_o which_o eve_n conceive_v and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o which_o the_o bless_a virgin_n do_v conceive_v these_o be_v rather_o flight_n of_o fancy_n and_o start_v of_o wit_n in_o a_o preacher_n than_o a_o exposition_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n only_o i_o will_v have_v it_o observe_v how_o in_o his_o 5_o book_n p._n 284._o he_o collect_v all_o the_o quality_n and_o all_o the_o name_n which_o be_v usual_o give_v to_o the_o word_n and_o to_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o may_v apply_v they_o to_o jesus_n christ_n first_o say_v ●he_n god_n ●e●●t_n before_o all_o the_o creature_n a_o 〈◊〉_d unsonable_a power_n which_o be_v sometime_o call_v the_o spirit_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n sometime_o the_o son_n sometime_o the_o wisdom_n sometime_o a_o angel_n sometime_o god_n sometime_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o word_n for_o all_o these_o name_n be_v give_v to_o he_o either_o because_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o design_n or_o purpose_n of_o the_o father_n or_o because_o he_o be_v beget_v by_o his_o will._n all_o this_o have_v much_o of_o the_o air_n of_o a_o theological_a allegory_n by_o which_o one_o will_v express_v that_o spirit_n and_o that_o power_n of_o god_n which_o he_o employ_v to_o execute_v his_o counsel_n and_o
and_o his_o spirit_n and_o further_o to_o make_v it_o clear_a that_o this_o father_n always_o confound_v the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o word_n i_o must_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o last_o passage_n i_o be_o about_o to_o cite_v he_o apply_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o same_o word_n of_o solomon_n which_o be_v ordinary_o apply_v to_o the_o son_n the_o word_n say_v he_o who_o be_v the_o son_n be_v always_o with_o the_o father_n and_o because_o the_o wisdom_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v also_o with_o god_n before_o the_o creation_n it_o speak_v thus_o by_o solomon_n god_n have_v found_v the_o earth_n by_o his_o wisdom_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o the_o lord_n create_v i_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v therefore_o but_o one_o god_n who_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o by_o his_o word_n chap._n xi_o a_o continuation_n of_o the_o same_o proof_n that_o the_o ancient_n understand_v by_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o after_o all_o you_o will_v say_v irenaeus_n make_v a_o express_a distinction_n between_o the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n i_o answer_v yes_o but_o david_n make_v the_o same_o distinction_n too_o and_o from_o he_o i_o believe_v the_o father_n borrow_v they_o the_o heaven_n say_v he_o be_v form_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n by_o the_o way_n who_o will_v be_v so_o weak_a as_o to_o affirm_v that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a by_o these_o two_o word_n the_o same_o power_n of_o god_n as_o if_o the_o word_n be_v not_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n the_o word_n can_v one_o forbear_v smile_v when_o one_o see_v our_o divine_n put_v david_n in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o trinitarian_n in_o fine_a irenaeus_n extol_v the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o infinite_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o first_o man_n which_o be_v by_o breathe_a life_n into_o he_o or_o by_o the_o divine_a breath_n irenaeus_n affirm_v it_o but_o dr._n bull_n deny_v it_o maintain_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o miraculous_a conception_n in_o a_o manner_n more_o excellent_a than_o adam_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o immediate_a generation_n or_o formation_n by_o god_n own_o hand_n let_v we_o suppose_v it_o as_o the_o doctor_n will_v have_v it_o yet_o after_o all_o he_o must_v agree_v that_o this_o holy_a father_n carry_v the_o parallel_n that_o he_o make_v between_o the_o first_o and_o second_o adam_n no_o further_o than_o their_o generation_n which_o be_v equal_o extraordinary_a in_o both_o this_o appear_v in_o the_o 31st_o chapter_n of_o his_o 3d_o book_n if_o the_o first_o adam_n say_v he_o have_v his_o be_v from_o a_o man_n it_o may_v be_v say_v with_o some_o show_n of_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o the_o second_o adam_n and_o that_o joseph_n be_v his_o father_n but_o if_o it_o be_v true_a on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o first_o be_v form_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v not_o the_o same_o word_n act_v with_o the_o same_o power_n as_o he_o do_v at_o the_o formation_n of_o adam_n carry_v a_o resemblance_n of_o the_o same_o generation_n let_v this_o comparison_n be_v a_o little_a mind_v it_o contain_v this_o clear_o that_o god_n do_v no_o more_o in_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n in_o who_o he_o will_v dwell_v than_o in_o that_o of_o the_o first_o adam_n that_o adam_n and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o immediate_a production_n of_o this_o word_n consequently_n there_o be_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o infer_v the_o hypostatick_a union_n of_o the_o word_n with_o jesus_n christ_n than_o with_o adam_n this_o word_n be_v as_o you_o see_v nothing_o but_o the_o power_n of_o god_n which_o have_v immediate_o form_v the_o first_o man_n do_v also_o form_n jesus_n christ_n after_o the_o same_o primitive_a manner_n of_o generation_n all_o the_o difference_n be_v that_o god_n be_v please_v to_o dwell_v in_o the_o latter_a after_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n let_v we_o see_v in_o the_o next_o place_n what_o tertullian_n have_v to_o say_v he_o be_v a_o great_a platonist_n but_o that_o party_n do_v not_o always_o strict_o observe_v the_o rule_n of_o platonism_n they_o have_v their_o lucid_a interval_n wherein_o some_o remain_v of_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n drop_v from_o their_o pen_n whenever_o they_o philosophise_v according_a to_o the_o humour_n of_o that_o faction_n they_o be_v to_o be_v suspect_v it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o their_o prejudices_fw-la but_o when_o they_o happen_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o their_o own_o hypothesis_n what_o be_v it_o that_o can_v oblige_v they_o to_o it_o but_o the_o power_n of_o truth_n alone_o tertullian_n therefore_o at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o discourse_n against_o praxea_n sist_z this_o matter_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o bottom_n speak_v of_o they_o as_o one_o and_o the_o same_o power_n it_o be_v worth_a while_o to_o read_v the_o whole_a throughout_o but_o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o this_o follow_a passage_n which_o be_v decisive_a and_o beyond_o dispute_n contra_fw-la prax._n cap._n 26._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n i._n e._n holy_a ghosi_fw-la shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o etc._n etc._n by_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n although_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v god_n nevertheless_o he_o not_o call_v it_o direct_o god_n he_o will_v have_v we_o understand_v a_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a which_o be_v to_o attend_v the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n and_o get_v he_o the_o name_n that_o he_o have_v this_o be_v that_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o we_o call_v the_o word_n also_o for_o as_o when_o st._n john_n say_v the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n by_o the_o term_n word_n we_o understand_v the_o spirit_n so_o in_o this_o passage_n we_o understand_v the_o word_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o spirit_n since_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o these_o two_o be_v but_o one_o for_o if_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v not_o the_o spirit_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o he_o of_o who_o st._n john_n say_v that_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n will_v not_o be_v the_o same_o with_o he_o of_o who_o the_o angel_n say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v make_v flesh_n let_v we_o weigh_v well_o all_o these_o word_n by_o the_o spirit_n tertullian_n understand_v nothing_o but_o a_o portion_n of_o the_o whole_a a_o beam_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n as_o he_o express_v himself_o elsewhere_o because_o otherwise_o it_o will_v follow_v according_a to_o praxea_n that_o the_o father_n himself_o be_v incarnate_a he_o will_v have_v it_o that_o this_o portion_n make_v the_o son_n what_o he_o be_v that_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o confound_v the_o spirit_n with_o the_o word_n and_o will_v have_v st._n luke_n and_o st._n john_n speak_v the_o same_o language_n and_o that_o the_o first_o may_v have_v say_v the_o word_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o latter_a the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v flesh_n since_o that_o by_o the_o term_n holy_a ghost_n the_o word_n must_v be_v understand_v and_o by_o the_o term_n word_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a st._n john_n will_v speak_v of_o one_o particular_a spirit_n and_o the_o angel_n of_o another_o and_o more_o than_o this_o he_o acquaint_v we_o what_o use_n we_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o these_o two_o word_n which_o at_o the_o bottom_n signify_v but_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o be_v we_o ought_v to_o call_v this_o power_n spirit_n when_o we_o will_v express_v its_o substance_n and_o word_n when_o we_o will_v express_v its_o operation_n in_o short_a he_o decide_v our_o question_n by_o say_v that_o these_o two_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o same_o power_n for_o the_o word_n say_v he_o in_o his_o rule_n of_o faith_n de_fw-fr prescript_n descend_v from_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o power_n of_o god_n into_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n what_o do_v this_o import_n viz._n the_o word_n descend_v from_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o power_n of_o god_n if_o not_o this_o that_o the_o word_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o emanation_n a_o manifestation_n of_o the_o power_n which_o be_v internal_a and_o essential_a to_o god_n and_o it_o be_v almost_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o marius_n victorin_n contra_fw-la arium_fw-la lib._n 1._o state_v a_o twofold_a power_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o
divine_a person_n nor_o by_o consequence_n the_o person_n themselves_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v the_o doctor_n will_v find_v it_o hard_o enough_o to_o apply_v his_o solution_n to_o all_o the_o argument_n i_o be_o about_o to_o mention_v and_o if_o he_o can_v do_v it_o it_o will_v be_v no_o more_o difficult_a for_o he_o to_o find_v the_o divinity_n of_o j._n c._n in_o all_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o gospel_n where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o hope_v also_o that_o at_o last_o he_o will_v say_v that_o when_o j._n c._n promise_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o his_o apostle_n he_o promise_v they_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o i_o must_v beg_v my_o reader_n be_v patience_n a_o little_a long_o to_o see_v what_o answer_v the_o doctor_n will_v make_v against_o the_o last_o authority_n i_o be_o go_v to_o allege_v and_o that_o be_v a_o letter_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardis_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o theodoret_n hist_n eccles_n the_o father_n there_o draw_v a_o creed_n in_o three_o very_a distinct_a article_n the_o first_o concern_v the_o father_n the_o second_o the_o son_n and_o three_o article_n the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o last_o which_o be_v so_o express_o distinguish_v from_o that_o of_o the_o son_n they_o speak_v thus_o of_o the_o incarnation_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o believe_v also_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a spirit_n or_o paraclet_n which_o the_o lord_n promise_v and_o send_v he_o do_v not_o suffer_v but_o the_o man_n who_o he_o assume_v or_o take_v from_o the_o virgin_n mary_n he_o suffer_v because_o he_o be_v capable_a of_o it_o whereas_o god_n be_v immortal_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n be_v passus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la where_o one_o see_v the_o pronoun_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d agree_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v a_o neuter_n now_o of_o this_o spirit_n the_o father_n say_v he_o can_v suffer_v but_o it_o be_v man_n who_o he_o put_v on_o and_o take_v from_o the_o virgin_n that_o do_v suffer_v this_o they_o speak_v i_o say_v of_o the_o paraclet_n who_o they_o confess_v after_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o not_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o j._n c._n a_o passage_n express_v and_o formal_a which_o clear_o prove_v these_o doctor_n understand_v nothing_o else_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o that_o power_n of_o god_n whereof_o the_o word_n be_v the_o manifestation_n and_o the_o operation_n confound_v the_o spirit_n with_o the_o word_n and_o very_o distinct_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o paraclet_n be_v incarnate_a be_v the_o paraclet_n the_o divine_a nature_n of_o j._n c._n or_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n here_o we_o will_v wait_v the_o doctor_n be_v answer_n valesius_fw-la not_o bear_n with_o this_o incongruity_n in_o the_o council_n have_v the_o boldness_n to_o corrupt_v this_o passage_n in_o his_o version_n by_o foist_v in_o the_o word_n christ_n for_o thus_o he_o have_v translate_v it_o he_o do_v not_o suffer_v but_o the_o man_n who_o christ_n put_v on_o the_o word_n christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o text_n which_o entire_o relate_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o paraclet_n in_o short_a that_o word_n ruin_v the_o whole_a sense_n of_o the_o period_n and_o strange_o confound_v all_o this_o three_o article_n which_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v distinct_a from_o that_o concern_v j._n c._n both_o translator_n and_o copyists_n be_v guilty_a of_o falsification_n in_o this_o particular_a give_v i_o leave_v to_o affirm_v one_o thing_n and_o that_o be_v that_o the_o ancient_n have_v often_o distinguish_v the_o holy_a spirit_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a whereof_o he_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o same_o text_n call_v the_o latter_a the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o say_v only_o of_o the_o former_a that_o he_o overshadow_a the_o virgin_n now_o even_o this_o show_n that_o by_o the_o word_n they_o understand_v nothing_o but_o the_o power_n and_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o power_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o high_a the_o holy_a spirit_n signify_v the_o substance_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a signify_v the_o operation_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a according_a to_o the_o father_n be_v not_o otherwise_o distinguish_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n then_o as_o the_o operation_n be_v distinguish_v from_o its_o subject_n we_o may_v conclude_v therefore_o from_o proof_n so_o very_o evident_a that_o the_o ancient_n who_o have_v deify_v j._n c._n have_v not_o other_o ground_n for_o their_o theology_n but_o the_o birth_n of_o j._n c._n of_o a_o virgin_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o by_o the_o word_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o always_o understand_v this_o miraculous_a operation_n and_o that_o they_o never_o advance_v any_o high_a in_o their_o discourse_n towards_o that_o which_o be_v call_v a_o eternal_a generation_n chap._n xii_o a_o account_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o allegorical_a theology_n of_o the_o father_n concern_v the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n i_o dare_v assure_v my_o reader_n that_o i_o can_v show_v he_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o this_o allegorical_a theology_n it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o father_n imitate_v the_o gnostic_n in_o many_o thing_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o way_n of_o allegory_n and_o contemplation_n but_o it_o be_v mark_n the_o valentinian_n as_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 12._o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o allegorical_a exposition_n on_o the_o birth_n of_o j._n c._n that_o be_v the_o first_o who_o elevate_v it_o to_o a_o sense_n of_o contemplation_n and_o mystery_n he_o make_v a_o quaternity_n of_o the_o man_n and_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o first_o pair_n and_o of_o the_o word_n and_o life_n which_o be_v the_o second_o pair_n but_o what_o sort_n of_o theology_n do_v he_o couch_v under_o this_o enigma_n or_o allegory_n why_o nothing_o less_o than_o the_o wonderful_a conception_n of_o j._n c._n the_o man_n say_v he_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a because_o that_o act_v instead_o of_o the_o man._n the_o church_n be_v the_o holy_a virgin_n because_o she_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o church_n the_o angel_n gabriel_n be_v instead_o of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n instead_o of_o life_n nothing_o can_v better_o convince_v we_o of_o the_o allegory_n use_v by_o the_o valentinian_o than_o this_o passage_n in_o which_o the_o angel_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o life_n the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a be_v instead_o of_o the_o man_n and_o the_o virgin_n be_v instead_o of_o the_o church_n i_o may_v also_o have_v produce_v this_o passage_n for_o a_o proof_n when_o i_o be_v argue_v this_o point_n but_o i_o have_v reserve_v it_o on_o purpose_n for_o this_o place_n to_o show_v that_o the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o the_o word_n reduce_v itself_o to_o the_o miraculous_a conception_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o which_o both_o the_o heretic_n and_o the_o orthodox_n have_v equal_o allegorize_v each_o take_v his_o flight_n as_o his_o contemplation_n lead_v he_o on_o and_o this_o be_v that_o famous_a theology_n so_o much_o extol_v by_o the_o father_n i_o know_v most_o of_o they_o be_v entangle_v with_o their_o platonism_n have_v mighty_o embroil_v the_o first_o and_o ancient_a idea_n of_o this_o matter_n but_o i_o know_v also_o that_o before_o they_o come_v to_o make_v two_o hypostasis_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n they_o be_v terrible_o perplex_v about_o the_o latter_a and_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o to_o do_v hence_o it_o be_v without_o doubt_n that_o they_o so_o long_o delay_v the_o deify_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v not_o at_o all_o touch_v upon_o its_o divinity_n so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o it_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v so_o small_a a_o figure_n at_o that_o time_n that_o some_o father_n of_o the_o council_n make_v no_o difficulty_n to_o give_v its_o place_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n by_o make_v she_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n of_o which_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o elmacinus_n and_o patricide_n in_o hot_v orient_n hist_o lib._n 2._o p._n 227._o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n dare_v not_o speak_v open_o upon_o the_o point_n and_o in_o s._n basil_n time_n there_o be_v a_o little_a shiness_fw-mi in_o calling_z the_o holy_a ghost_n direct_o and_o formal_o god_n it_o be_v worth_a our_o regard_n what_o petavius_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 7._o §_o 2._o say_v hereupon_o the_o catholic_a church_n say_v he_o accommodate_v itself_o for_o prudential_a reason_n to_o human_a frailty_n come_v not_o to_o the_o full_a profession_n of_o some_o
that_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v ignatius_n favour_v the_o opinion_n of_o christ_n pre-existence_n or_o that_o the_o epistle_n of_o that_o father_n be_v a_o forgery_n after_o his_o time_n it_o be_v to_o the_o first_o and_o early_a antiquity_n we_o must_v ascend_v artemon_n will_v be_v in_o the_o right_n if_o he_o reject_v those_o latter_a testimony_n and_o produce_v more_o ancient_a one_o for_o his_o own_o doctrine_n but_o the_o anonymous_n cite_v scripture_n and_o so_o do_v artemon_n appeal_v to_o it_o allege_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o truth_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v that_o therefore_o be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o who_o have_v the_o most_o reason_n to_o appeal_v to_o this_o most_o primitive_a authority_n for_o i_o intend_v to_o examine_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v there_o deify_v the_o anonymous_n make_v another_o small_a attack_z upon_o the_o artemonite_n for_o their_o seem_a to_o insinuate_v that_o victor_n be_v not_o against_o their_o doctrine_n but_o that_o zephirin_fw-mi be_v the_o first_o that_o do_v persecute_v it_o i_o will_v not_o repeat_v here_o what_o i_o have_v remark_v touch_v the_o depose_n of_o theodotus_n that_o victor_n may_v excommunicate_v he_o as_o a_o ebionite_n without_o break_v communion_n with_o the_o artemonite_n who_o maintain_v the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n of_o the_o miraculous_a conception_n of_o our_o saviour_n it_o be_v sufficient_a at_o present_a to_o show_v that_o the_o word_n of_o artemon_n may_v fair_o signify_v that_o victor_n be_v the_o first_o who_o attack_v the_o apostolic_a faith_n but_o that_o zephirin_fw-mi entire_o destroy_v it_o so_o far_o be_v artemon_n from_o rank_v victor_n among_o those_o who_o preserve_v the_o truth_n entire_a that_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o he_o begin_v and_o zephirin_fw-mi complete_v its_o ruin_n victor_n begin_v by_o excommunicate_v one_o single_a christian_a theodotus_n and_o certain_o zephirin_fw-mi conclude_v by_o excommunicate_v the_o whole_a orthodox_n church_n or_o all_o the_o other_o great_a man_n who_o join_v with_o artemon_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o expire_a truth_n as_o the_o fable_n concern_v their_o bp_o natalis_n that_o come_v after_o incline_v one_o to_o think_v i_o call_v it_o a_o fable_n for_o nothing_o be_v more_o extravagant_a than_o to_o talk_v of_o angel_n whip_v and_o scourge_v the_o artemonite_n bishop_n into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n how_o be_v the_o angel_n the_o first_o who_o make_v convert_v by_o dragoon_v be_v there_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v more_o discredit_v this_o romance_n of_o the_o anonymous_n another_o story_n that_o eusebius_n have_v tack_v to_o this_o be_v when_o he_o make_v the_o anonymous_n say_v that_o theodotus_n be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o the_o error_n ascribe_v to_o he_o which_o be_v false_a take_v his_o heresy_n in_o what_o sense_n you_o please_v dr._n bull_n endeavour_v to_o cover_v the_o reputation_n of_o eusebius_n by_o a_o certain_a wretched_a distinction_n but_o he_o do_v not_o observe_v that_o eusebius_n contradict_v he_o for_o he_o go_v on_o to_o say_v in_o the_o same_o book_n that_o theodotus_n be_v the_o first_o who_o victor_n excommunicate_v which_o suppose_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o who_o suffer_v for_o his_o adherence_n to_o this_o doctrine_n but_o not_o the_o first_o who_o publish_v it_o if_o he_o be_v the_o first_o martyr_n for_o it_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o it_o it_o be_v high_o probable_a that_o the_o great_a noise_n of_o the_o excommunication_n of_o theodotus_n upon_o the_o very_a account_n that_o this_o persecution_n be_v new_a and_o unheard_a of_o make_v he_o pass_v in_o aftertime_n for_o the_o very_a author_n of_o that_o opinion_n for_o which_o he_o be_v persecute_v not_o to_o insist_v on_o it_o at_o present_a that_o eusebius_n make_v no_o scruple_n a_o little_a to_o corrupt_v the_o story_n at_o all_o time_n when_o he_o can_v by_o that_o fraud_n give_v the_o air_n of_o antiquity_n to_o his_o platonic_a logos_fw-la or_o of_o novelty_n to_o the_o opposite_a doctrine_n which_o he_o hate_v with_o all_o his_o heart_n he_o have_v be_v catch_v in_o so_o many_o other_o place_n that_o the_o presumption_n against_o he_o can_v but_o be_v very_o violent_a for_o instance_n where_o he_o make_v josephus_n say_v that_o on_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n passion_n a_o voice_n be_v hear_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v let_v we_o go_v hence_o and_o witness_v another_o passage_n where_o he_o make_v the_o same_o josephus_n say_v euseb_n hist_o eccl._n lib._n 2._o c._n 9_o that_o it_o be_v a_o angel_n who_o appear_v over_o the_o head_n of_o herod_n agrippa_n whereas_o josephus_n expressy_a say_v it_o be_v a_o owl_n one_o plain_o discern_v where_o the_o pious_a fraud_n lie_v he_o will_v not_o have_v it_o be_v think_v that_o the_o jewish_a historian_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o st._n luke_n thus_o it_o appear_v in_o spite_n of_o all_o the_o effort_n of_o eusebius_n that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o victor_n and_o zephirin_fw-mi that_o the_o pure_a faith_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n fall_v with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o nazarene_o which_o from_o that_o time_n have_v often_o pass_v for_o heretic_n the_o new_a succession_n of_o gentile_a bishop_n euseb_n lib._n 4._o c._n 5._o begin_v with_o one_o mark_n and_o platonism_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n with_o the_o new_a bishop_n saturninus_z basilides_n and_o the_o whole_a class_n of_o the_o gnostic_n make_v a_o mighty_a progress_n afterward_o under_o colour_n of_o discover_v secret_n unknown_a heretofore_o to_o the_o church_n about_o the_o same_o time_n carpocrates_n his_o heresy_n be_v broach_v another_o mysteryman_n to_o speak_v the_o truth_n the_o infamous_a practice_n of_o these_o pretender_n to_o illumination_n be_v not_o long_o bear_v withal_o in_o the_o church_n human_a nature_n alone_o without_o the_o succour_n of_o religion_n know_v how_o to_o quit_v itself_o of_o it_o in_o a_o short_a time_n but_o as_o for_o their_o philosophy_n the_o church_n manage_v that_o to_o her_o purpose_n after_o some_o sift_v and_o refine_n it_o be_v adjust_v to_o the_o more_o specious_a part_n of_o her_o religion_n for_o the_o support_n of_o her_o new_a opinion_n which_o be_v pure_a speculation_n the_o affection_n be_v not_o so_o far_o concern_v about_o they_o as_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o their_o repugnancy_n and_o the_o mind_n which_o be_v natural_o desirous_a of_o knowledge_n find_v its_o account_n in_o they_o and_o the_o natural_a veneration_n man_n have_v for_o mystery_n and_o for_o every_o thing_n they_o do_v not_o comprehend_v have_v the_o great_a stroke_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o gain_v the_o point_n so_o one_o see_v how_o by_o insensible_a method_n and_o degree_n the_o gospel_n which_o be_v a_o doctrine_n pure_o practical_a be_v exchange_v for_o contemplation_n mystery_n and_o fanaticism_n chap._n xiii_o a_o account_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n call_v nazarene_o to_o conclude_v it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o give_v my_o reader_n a_o idea_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n call_v nazarene_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o they_o as_o many_o of_o the_o father_n and_o some_o of_o the_o modern_n have_v observe_v the_o former_a improper_o so_o call_v and_o more_o proper_o ebionite_n for_o they_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n to_o have_v be_v the_o son_n of_o joseph_n and_o oblige_v the_o gentile_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n among_o these_o such_o who_o hold_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n be_v tolerate_v and_o account_v christian_n but_o the_o other_o have_v not_o that_o character_n because_o they_o make_v moses_n law_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o hold_v jesus_n for_o no_o more_o than_o a_o just_a man_n or_o a_o prophet_n who_o suffer_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n they_o will_v not_o have_v the_o benefit_n of_o his_o mission_n to_o extend_v to_o the_o gentile_n or_o in_o a_o word_n that_o he_o be_v the_o promise_a messiah_n and_o have_v any_o power_n in_o heaven_n some_o believe_v he_o be_v not_o true_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a other_o believe_v he_o be_v that_o he_o may_v receive_v the_o reward_n of_o a_o good_a man_n but_o not_o that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v lord_n of_o the_o world_n they_o can_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o think_v that_o jesus_n who_o be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v in_o so_o low_a and_o mean_a a_o condition_n can_v be_v the_o glorious_a messiah_n the_o christ_n so_o often_o promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n the_o other_o sort_n of_o nazarene_o proper_o so_o call_v be_v the_o believer_n of_o judea_n to_o who_o that_o name_n be_v give_v as_o the_o name_n christian_n be_v to_o the_o gentile_a proselyte_n these_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n by_o the_o holy_a